Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a bishop_n rome_n 3,853 5 6.3333 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A94296 Of religious assemblies, and the publick service of God a discourse according to apostolicall rule and practice. / By Herbert Thorndike. Thorndike, Herbert, 1598-1672. 1642 (1642) Wing T1054; Thomason E1098_1; ESTC R22419 207,469 444

There are 40 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

which_o be_v convert_v and_o the_o conversion_n of_o those_o which_o be_v not_o thus_o be_v timotheus_n and_o titus_n place_v over_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n and_o crete_n just_a upon_o the_o time_n when_o he_o make_v account_n to_o see_v they_o no_o more_o thus_o be_v mark_n attendant_a on_o peter_n at_o write_v his_o first_o epistle_n v._o 13._o who_o be_v afterward_o as_o all_o agree_v seat_v by_o he_o at_o alexandria_n and_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n there_o clemens_n and_o linus_n companion_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o antiquity_n agree_v be_v place_v by_o they_o over_o the_o church_n at_o rome_n though_o in_o what_o rank_n and_o condition_n it_o agree_v not_o the_o word_n of_o theodoret_n be_v remarkable_a where_o he_o answer_v the_o question_n why_o s._n paul_n write_v epistle_n to_o timotheus_n and_o titus_n none_o to_o silas_n or_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o we_o say_v say_v he_o that_o he_o have_v already_o p●●_n church_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o these_o the_o rest_n he_o have_v with_o he_o what_o mean_v the_o apostle_n instruction_n concern_v the_o perpetual_a government_n of_o those_o church_n if_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v but_o to_o plant_v presbytery_n there_o and_o away_o s._n paul_n send_v for_o timotheus_n to_o rome_n 2._o tim._n iiii_o 9_o as_o for_o titus_n to_o nicopolis_n three_o 12._o who_o be_v also_o with_o he_o at_o rome_n and_o go_v thence_o to_o dalmatia_n 2._o tim._n iiii_o 10._o but_o do_v he_o mean_v that_o his_o instruction_n shall_v be_v void_a thenceforth_o or_o be_v practise_v at_o ephesus_n and_o in_o crete_n afterward_o we_o can_v discredit_v antiquity_n that_o make_v they_o bishop_n there_o without_o offer_v violence_n to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o enforce_v it_o but_o how_o be_v titus_n count_v bishop_n of_o a_o church_n that_o be_v instruct_v to_o plant_v presbytery_n through_o the_o city_n of_o crete_n i_o 3._o all_o under_o his_o own_o government_n and_o oversight_n or_o how_o be_v timotheus_n bishop_n of_o one_o church_n of_o ephesus_n that_o be_v instruct_v to_o govern_v as_o well_o as_o to_o plant_v all_o the_o presbytery_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n write_v for_o all_o those_o presbytery_n import_v episcopal_a church_n no_o otherwise_o then_o the_o apostle_n have_v his_o chair_n in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o his_o plant_n according_a to_o tertullian_n the_o apostle_n can_v not_o settle_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o intend_a form_n at_o the_o beginning_n so_o far_o there_o be_v no_o fault_n in_o epiphanius_n his_o word_n not_o because_o they_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v but_o for_o reason_n best_o know_v to_o themselves_o because_o perhaps_o they_o may_v find_v it_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o their_o own_o disciple_n those_o church_n on_o which_o depend_v the_o plant_n and_o government_n of_o many_o more_o then_o to_o set_v man_n untried_a over_o the_o presbytery_n of_o particular_a church_n be_v s._n mark_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n the_o less_o because_o he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n through_o the_o country_n under_o it_o because_o he_o plant_v the_o government_n of_o church_n perhaps_o under_o his_o own_o oversight_n for_o the_o time_n or_o what_o inconvenience_n be_v it_o that_o s._n james_n a_o apostle_n shall_v be_v depute_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o exercise_v that_o office_n in_o the_o part_n of_o palestine_n and_o arabia_n always_o with_o resort_n to_o his_o residence_n at_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o that_o he_o shall_v therefore_o be_v count_v bishop_n of_o it_o in_o due_a time_n even_o during_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n several_a church_n have_v their_o several_a bishop_n as_o appeareth_z by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n of_o asia_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n be_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o timothy_n charge_n at_o first_o all_o presbyter_n be_v angel_n of_o church_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n xi_o for_o this_o cause_n ought_v a_o woman_n to_o have_v power_n upon_o her_o head_n because_o of_o the_o angel_n that_o seem_v the_o most_o natural_a meaning_n of_o his_o word_n for_o tertullian_n in_o divers_a place_n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr velandis_fw-la virginibus_fw-la intimate_v one_o reason_n of_o vail_v woman_n face_n in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o scandal_n of_o their_o countenance_n when_o bishop_n come_v over_o they_o no_o marvel_n if_o they_o alone_o be_v call_v the_o angel_n of_o those_o church_n for_o it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o presbyter_n be_v call_v bishop_n under_o the_o apostle_n but_o when_o several_a head_n be_v set_v over_o several_a church_n than_o head_n of_o presbytery_n be_v only_a bishop_n thenceforth_o those_o that_o will_v have_v we_o take_v those_o angel_n of_o church_n for_o the_o church_n of_o those_o angel_n rather_o than_o believe_v that_o epistle_n concern_v those_o church_n be_v fit_a to_o be_v address_v to_o their_o bishop_n may_v have_v correct_v their_o mistake_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n that_o say_v revel_v i._o 20._o the_o seven_o star_n be_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o seven_o church_n and_o the_o seven_o candlestick_n be_v the_o seven_o church_n s._n ambrose_n or_o whosoever_o write_v those_o commentary_n upon_o 1._o cor._n twelve_o 28._o say_v two_o thing_n first_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o there_o be_v bishop_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o then_o state_n of_o the_o church_n then_o have_v compare_v the_o apostle_n with_o prophet_n he_o conclude_v et_fw-la quia_fw-la ab_fw-la uno_fw-la deo_fw-la patre_fw-la sunt_fw-la omne_fw-la idcirco_fw-la singulos_fw-la episcopos_fw-la singulis_fw-la ecclesiis_fw-la praeesse_fw-la decrevit_fw-la and_o because_o all_o thing_n be_v from_o one_o father_n god_n therefore_o he_o decree_v that_o several_a bishop_n shall_v be_v over_o several_a church_n in_o these_o two_o particular_n he_o speak_v my_o whole_a meaning_n the_o apostle_n be_v bishop_n but_o not_o several_a one_o of_o several_a church_n but_o as_o there_o be_v one_o god_n over_o all_o so_o he_o decree_v say_v he_o that_o afterward_o several_a bishop_n shall_v be_v over_o several_a church_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o right_n reserve_v to_o great_a church_n over_o the_o less_o which_o now_o we_o see_v derive_v with_o so_o much_o learning_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o print_n which_o remain_v of_o that_o government_n and_o oversight_n of_o they_o which_o at_o the_o first_o rest_v in_o those_o great_a church_n from_o which_o they_o be_v propagate_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o by_o their_o companion_n walo_n messalinus_n stand_v stiff_a upon_o s._n hieromes_n opinion_n that_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n till_o they_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n to_o extinguish_v the_o schism_n of_o presbytery_n but_o tertullia_n word_n enforce_v more_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o time_n sit_v in_o those_o chair_n which_o the_o apostle_n possess_v for_o they_o and_o afore_o c._n xxxii_o sicut_fw-la smyrnaeorum_n ecclesia_fw-la polycarpum_fw-la ab_fw-la joanne_n conlocatum_fw-la refert_fw-la as_o the_o church_n at_o smyrna_n relate_v that_o john_n place_v polycarpus_n or_o install_v he_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o bishop_n chair_n there_o he_o think_v that_o all_o this_o import_v that_o polycarpus_n take_v place_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o presbyter_n and_o no_o more_o but_o indifferent_a reason_n will_v require_v he_o to_o grant_v no_o more_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n than_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o apostle_n import_v however_o s._n hierome_n reconcile_v his_o opinion_n with_o his_o own_o word_n concern_v the_o presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n that_o from_o s._n mark_n time_n be_v wont_a to_o take_v one_o of_o their_o number_n and_o place_v he_o on_o a_o high_a step_n and_o call_v he_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n common_a sense_n will_v enforce_v the_o high_a rank_n in_o which_o he_o sit_v to_o import_v the_o superiority_n and_o eminence_n of_o his_o office_n even_o during_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o consideration_n of_o this_o order_n or_o this_o bench_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v give_v i_o further_a occasion_n to_o resume_v and_o aver_v two_o particular_n of_o good_a consequence_n in_o this_o business_n the_o first_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o office_n common_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n as_o for_o preach_v and_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n so_o for_o the_o oversight_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o spiritual_a matter_n wherein_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n man_n communicate_v express_v in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n wherein_o there_o be_v any_o remembrance_n of_o their_o charge_n survay_v those_o passage_n of_o the_o act_n and_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o the_o office_n of_o presbyter_n be_v remember_v we_o find_v it_o every_o where_o describe_v as_o well_o by_o the_o oversight_n or_o
the_o apostle_n the_o scripture_n say_v act_v xiii_o 49._o upon_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v disperse_v all_o over_o the_o country_n and_o clemens_n disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n epist_n ad_fw-la cor._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d preach_v therefore_o through_o city_n and_o country_n they_o make_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o they_o try_v they_o by_o the_o spirit_n bishop_n and_o deacon_n of_o such_o as_o shall_v believe_v speak_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o time_n and_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o believe_v that_o congregation_n may_v be_v plant_v in_o these_o country_n and_o territory_n during_o their_o time_n though_o we_o read_v nothing_o of_o it_o here_o and_o the_o division_n of_o title_n and_o church_n that_o be_v city_n and_o rural_a congregation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v assign_v in_o the_o pope_n life_n to_o a_o far_o late_a time_n than_o this_o but_o do_v we_o not_o know_v that_o according_a to_o the_o general_a and_o primitive_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n these_o rural_a congregation_n receive_v their_o minister_n from_o the_o mother-churche_n in_o which_o their_o ordination_n be_v make_v do_v it_o not_o appear_v to_o common_a sense_n that_o the_o form_n of_o god_n public_a service_n as_o it_o have_v be_v describe_v uniform_a in_o the_o main_a ingredient_n from_o the_o beginning_n unconformable_a in_o particular_n of_o less_o moment_n be_v practise_v by_o particular_a congregation_n according_a to_o their_o mother-churche_n do_v not_o the_o distinction_n of_o diocese_n or_o as_o they_o be_v first_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d habitation_n adjoin_v to_o chief_a city_n receive_v in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o church_n proclaim_v that_o the_o institution_n and_o appointment_n of_o it_o can_v have_v be_v accessary_a and_o particular_a but_o universal_a and_o primitive_a and_o what_o cause_n have_v we_o to_o doubt_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n direct_v the_o apostle_n shall_v move_v they_o to_o that_o course_n which_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o world_n must_v needs_o be_v most_o reasonable_a or_o who_o can_v doubt_v that_o according_a to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o presume_v that_o frequent_a and_o populous_a residence_n must_v needs_o be_v furnish_v of_o man_n of_o best_a ability_n and_o mean_n to_o know_v the_o right_a course_n of_o order_v public_a matter_n of_o the_o church_n for_o most_o advantage_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n rather_o than_o that_o vulgar_a and_o rude_a congregation_n inflame_v with_o the_o ignorance_n and_o malice_n and_o overween_n of_o unable_a guide_n shall_v choose_v for_o themselves_o not_o only_o in_o thing_n necessary_a for_o their_o own_o soul_n health_n wherein_o all_o have_v their_o due_a interest_n but_o in_o thing_n concern_v the_o general_a state_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o be_v neither_o bind_v nor_o able_a to_o understand_v i_o must_v confess_v to_o have_v write_v heretofore_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o work_n of_o preach_v seem_v to_o have_v go_v rather_o by_o man_n ability_n then_o their_o office_n and_o now_o i_o hope_v in_o good_a time_n have_v declare_v here_o several_a regard_n in_o which_o this_o be_v verify_v it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o of_o the_o the_o same_o ecclesiastical_a order_n the_o same_o bench_n of_o the_o church_n some_o presbyter_n exercise_v the_o ability_n of_o preach_v some_o not_z it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o the_o rank_n of_o prophet_n furnish_v by_o the_o immediate_a inspiration_n of_o god_n for_o the_o more_o plentiful_a performance_n of_o that_o work_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o presbyter_n and_o if_o any_o man_n stand_v upon_o it_o it_o shall_v not_o trouble_v i_o to_o yield_v that_o which_o grotius_n of_o late_o have_v observe_v and_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n ferarius_fw-la de_fw-la ritu_fw-la concionum_fw-la two_o 6._o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o church_n lay_v man_n be_v license_v to_o preach_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o church_n according_a to_o the_o instance_n allege_v in_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o palestine_n to_o demetrius_n of_o alexandria_n in_o origen_n case_n relate_v by_o eusebius_n for_o it_o seem_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o succession_n of_o scribe_n after_o the_o prophet_n in_o the_o synagogue_n see_v it_o be_v neither_o reasonable_a to_o conceive_v that_o scribe_n be_v deny_v this_o office_n when_o they_o be_v find_v fit_a nor_o that_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v grant_v be_v all_o elder_n of_o synagogue_n and_o by_o this_o a_o easy_a reason_n be_v give_v how_o our_o lord_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v admit_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o synagogue_n as_o license_v and_o invite_v by_o the_o elder_n and_o ruler_n of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o scripture_n act_v xiii_o 14._o and_o perhaps_o the_o custom_n may_v remain_v in_o the_o church_n after_o prophetical_a grace_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o it_o be_v cease_v that_o those_o which_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o inspiration_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o these_o mechanic_n person_n that_o make_v themselves_o church_n and_o the_o church_n they_o their_o minister_n without_o education_n without_o call_v without_o acknowledgement_n of_o one_o church_n of_o god_n they_o please_v themselves_o in_o observe_v that_o s._n paul_n use_v his_o trade_n while_o he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n as_o they_o do_v and_o in_o that_o perhaps_o there_o be_v as_o much_o mistake_v as_o in_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o be_v not_o all_o one_o for_o a_o preacher_n to_o be_v breed_v to_o a_o trade_n from_o his_o youth_n and_o for_o he_o that_o be_v breed_v to_o a_o trade_n from_o his_o youth_n to_o become_v a_o preacher_n when_o he_o please_v to_o i_o there_o be_v so_o much_o difference_n that_o i_o yield_v the_o one_o to_o be_v s._n paul_n case_n as_o the_o world_n see_v the_o other_o to_o be_v they_o it_o be_v observe_v in_o scaliger_n elenchus_n and_o elsewhere_o that_o s._n paul_n in_o that_o particular_a make_v use_n of_o his_o education_n under_o gamaliel_n in_o regard_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o their_o doctor_n to_o breed_v their_o scholar_n to_o a_o trade_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n which_o they_o be_v to_o profess_v and_o there_o be_v a_o say_n among_o they_o in_o pirke_n aboth_o of_o this_o tenor_n to_o my_o remembrance_n always_o with_o the_o law_n let_v a_o man_n learn_v the_o way_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o meaning_n be_v a_o trade_n for_o his_o maintenance_n hereupon_o it_o be_v ordinary_a for_o their_o rabbi_n to_o be_v surname_v by_o their_o trade_n and_o in_o maimoni_n talmud_n torah_n c._n iii._o you_o have_v divers_a say_n of_o their_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o with_o the_o law_n a_o man_n be_v to_o practice_v a_o trade_n for_o his_o maintenance_n as_o this_o all_o law_n that_o be_v all_o learning_n of_o the_o law_n with_o which_o there_o be_v not_o work_v in_o the_o end_n come_v to_o nothing_o and_o draw_v on_o naughtiness_n and_o the_o end_n of_o such_o a_o man_n be_v he_o fall_v to_o rob_v creature_n and_o in_o c._n two_o afore_o he_o that_o exercise_v a_o trade_n with_o the_o study_n of_o the_o law_n must_v spend_v three_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n at_o his_o trade_n and_o nine_o at_o his_o study_n which_o be_v divide_v as_o it_o follow_v there_o the_o knowledge_n then_o of_o these_o ability_n to_o which_o this_o education_n tend_v take_v according_a to_o public_a order_n of_o that_o time_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o they_o for_o the_o public_a instruction_n of_o the_o people_n allow_v according_a to_o the_o same_o seem_v to_o contain_v sufficient_a warrant_n of_o humane_a call_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o church_n in_o they_o that_o be_v not_o minister_n of_o it_o s._n ambrose_n in_o eph._n iiii_o ut_fw-la ergò_fw-la cresceret_fw-la plebs_fw-la &_o multiplicaretur_fw-la omnibus_fw-la inter_fw-la initia_fw-la concessum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o evangelizare_fw-la &_o baptizare_fw-la &_o scripturas_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la explanare_fw-la that_o the_o people_n of_o believer_n may_v increase_v and_o multiply_v in_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v grant_v to_o all_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o baptize_v and_o to_o expound_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o that_o which_o he_o call_v preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o church_n though_o both_o be_v call_v preach_v among_o we_o for_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o publish_v the_o gospel_n where_o there_o be_v no_o church_n another_o to_o minister_v
concern_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o doctrine_n whereof_o there_o he_o speak_v and_o of_o nothing_o else_o and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v both_o one_o there_o with_o the_o apostle_n for_o what_o reason_n else_o can_v be_v render_v why_o there_o be_v no_o remembrance_n of_o pastor_n in_o either_o of_o those_o other_o place_n wherein_o the_o apostle_n make_v a_o more_o particular_a reckon_n of_o the_o ministery_n of_o the_o church_n both_o to_o the_o roman_n and_o to_o the_o corinthian_n what_o reason_n but_o this_o because_o they_o be_v set_v down_o in_o both_o place_n under_o the_o name_n of_o doctor_n well_o may_v it_o seem_v that_o the_o office_n of_o they_o who_o the_o synagogue_n call_v pastor_n be_v refer_v in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o inferior_a order_n of_o deacon_n the_o name_n stick_v upon_o those_o that_o minister_v the_o food_n of_o the_o soul_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v for_o the_o purpose_n of_o it_o clemens_n epist_n ad_fw-la cor._n p._n 63._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o man_n faithful_a be_v a_o man_n able_a to_o utter_v knowledge_n be_v he_o wise_a in_o discern_a discourse_n be_v he_o pure_a in_o work_n he_o seem_v to_o point_v at_o some_o of_o the_o presbyter_n there_o in_o who_o these_o ability_n be_v tertull._n de_fw-fr prescript_n c._n 3._o quid_fw-la ergò_fw-la si_fw-la episcopus_fw-la si_fw-la diaconus_fw-la si_fw-la vidua_fw-la si_fw-la virgo_fw-la si_fw-la doctor_n si_fw-la etiam_fw-la martyr_n lapsus_fw-la à_fw-la regula_fw-la fuerit_fw-la what_o then_o if_o a_o bishop_n if_o a_o deacon_n a_o widow_n a_o virgin_n if_o even_o a_o martyr_n shall_v fall_v from_o the_o rule_n in_o this_o list_n of_o principal_a rank_n in_o the_o church_n presbyter_n have_v no_o room_n unless_o we_o understand_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o doctor_n the_o best_a part_n of_o their_o office_n theodoret_n epit._n haer._n l._n v._o c._n penult_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o can_v they_o say_v of_o the_o incestuous_a person_n at_o corinth_n who_o be_v not_o only_o vouchsafe_v the_o divine_a mystery_n but_o also_o have_v attain_v a_o doctor_n grace_n he_o follow_v s._n chrysostom_n conjecture_n which_o conceive_v that_o the_o corinthian_n be_v puff_v up_o as_o the_o apostle_n blame_v they_o 1._o cor._n v._n 3._o with_o the_o opinion_n of_o that_o man_n because_o he_o be_v one_o of_o their_o doctor_n that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o church_n that_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o preach_v and_o by_o that_o mean_n bear_v sway_v among_o the_o people_n in_o fine_a the_o apostle_n intend_v by_o doctor_n the_o same_o that_o be_v so_o call_v in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n or_o such_o of_o the_o presbyter_n as_o be_v see_v in_o preach_v it_o be_v worth_a the_o observe_n that_o beza_n have_v expound_v those_o who_o the_o apostle_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o otherwise_o then_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n mean_v indeed_o those_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n which_o he_o imagine_v but_o have_v show_v that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o in_o the_o church_n well_o may_v we_o take_v his_o judgement_n along_o with_o so_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n as_o he_o acknowledge_v which_o deserve_v still_o more_o credit_n from_o the_o precedent_n of_o synagogue_n which_o have_v elder_n some_o learn_v some_o not_o some_o that_o preach_v and_o some_o that_o do_v not_o as_o have_v be_v say_v salmasius_n of_o late_a in_o his_o work_n de_fw-fr foenore_n trapezit_n have_v show_v some_o evidence_n of_o two_o sort_n of_o presbyter_n in_o the_o first_o time_n of_o the_o church_n but_o according_a to_o his_o admirable_a knowledge_n he_o see_v withal_o that_o they_o be_v all_o of_o one_o rank_n in_o the_o church_n all_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n all_o make_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o by_o consequence_n none_o of_o those_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n which_o have_v be_v set_v up_o to_o manage_v the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n beside_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n which_o name_n he_o think_v most_o proper_a to_o those_o presbyter_n which_o preach_v not_o but_o be_v exercise_v in_o order_v church-matter_n and_o presbyter_n be_v describe_v almost_o in_o all_o place_n where_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n by_o both_o quality_n of_o teach_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n which_o be_v my_o argument_n to_o conclude_v that_o howsoever_o some_o man_n ability_n may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o one_o rather_o than_o in_o the_o other_o howsoever_o some_o man_n according_a to_o their_o ability_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o this_o rather_o then_o to_o that_o yet_o both_o office_n concern_v the_o whole_a order_n that_o of_o preach_v in_o chief_a to_o which_o though_o some_o attain_v not_o yet_o all_o be_v encourage_v to_o labour_n towards_o it_o as_o the_o most_o excellent_a work_n of_o their_o place_n as_o by_z s._n paul_n allow_v they_o that_o double_a maintenance_n especial_o in_o that_o respect_n so_o by_o these_o constitution_n allow_v they_o that_o double_a portion_n at_o their_o feast_n of_o love_n for_o that_o purpose_n that_o they_o may_v take_v pain_n in_o the_o word_n of_o doctrine_n as_o the_o word_n go_v there_o be_v it_o then_o resolve_v that_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n at_o least_o part_n of_o they_o be_v those_o doctor_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n write_v and_o from_o thence_o be_v it_o consider_v what_o distemper_n slight_a mistake_n in_o the_o sound_n of_o the_o scripture_n bring_v to_o pass_v when_o we_o see_v the_o order_n of_o doctor_n distinct_a from_o that_o of_o presbyter_n press_v as_o a_o point_n of_o that_o discipline_n that_o make_v one_o of_o the_o essential_a mark_n of_o a_o visible_a church_n but_o whether_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o teach_v the_o people_n at_o their_o assembly_n be_v presbyter_n or_o not_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a to_o determine_v some_o of_o they_o we_o have_v reason_n enough_o to_o think_v be_v be_v it_o but_o for_o those_o prophet_n of_o antiochia_n act_v xiii_o 2._o that_o minister_v unto_o the_o lord_n and_o fast_v when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v unto_o they_o separate_a i_n barnabas_n and_o saul_n for_o the_o work_n to_o which_o i_o have_v appoint_v they_o and_o those_o other_o among_o who_o timothy_n receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n with_o prophesy_v 1._o tim._n four_o 14._o but_o that_o all_o presbyter_n be_v prophet_n or_o all_o prophet_n presbyter_n be_v more_o than_o i_o can_v resolve_v of_o these_o prophet_n henceforth_o we_o be_v to_o entreat_v chap._n v._n prophet_n in_o most_o of_o the_o church_n remember_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o gift_n of_o language_n the_o purpose_n and_o nature_n of_o it_o the_o limb_n and_o branch_n of_o both_o these_o grace_n in_o s._n paul_n of_o pray_v and_o praise_v god_n by_o the_o spirit_n those_o that_o speak_v strange_a tongue_n understand_v what_o they_o say_v interpretation_n concern_v all_o that_o be_v speak_v in_o strange_a language_n they_o pray_v and_o study_v for_o spiritual_a grace_n prophesy_v in_o s._n paul_n signify_v sing_v psalm_n prayer_n of_o the_o church_n conceive_v by_o immediate_a inspiration_n the_o nearness_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o prophesy_v and_o language_n the_o ground_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n rule_n it_o proceed_v of_o none_o but_o prophet_n what_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v in_o that_o which_o prophet_n speak_v the_o custom_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o many_o preach_a at_o the_o same_o assembly_n come_v from_o hence_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n it_o please_v god_n for_o the_o propagation_n and_o maintenance_n of_o it_o to_o revive_v the_o grace_n of_o prophesy_v decay_a and_o lose_v among_o his_o ancient_a people_n in_o a_o large_a measure_n in_o most_o of_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n though_o there_o be_v not_o find_v so_o much_o concern_v their_o office_n any_o where_o as_o in_o this_o church_n of_o corinth_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n act_n xi_o 27._o and_o in_o those_o day_n come_v prophet_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o antiochia_n xv_o 32._o and_o judas_n and_o silas_n be_v prophet_n also_o themselves_o in_o the_o church_n of_o antiochia_n act_v xiii_o 1._o now_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v at_o antiochia_n certain_a prophet_n and_o doctor_n at_o thessalonica_n 1._o thess_n v._o 20._o despise_v not_o prophesy_v at_o corinth_n as_o we_o see_v at_o large_a at_o ephesus_n ephes_n four_o 11._o and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n some_o evangelist_n some_o prophet_n some_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n at_o rome_n rom._n twelve_o 6._o whether_o prophecy_n according_a to_o
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o on_o solemn_a day_n when_o there_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n more_o than_o ordinary_a offer_v by_o the_o law_n a_o three_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v over_z &_o above_o further_o n._n 8._o that_o as_o the_o limb_n of_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n be_v burn_v all_o night_n upon_o the_o altar_n so_o in_o correspondence_n there_o be_v order_v a_o prayer_n at_o night_n which_o though_o not_o obligatory_a he_o say_v be_v practise_v by_o all_o israel_n of_o the_o service_n appoint_v for_o fasting-day_n at_o close_v in_o the_o evening_n call_v therefore_o by_o they_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o need_v say_v nothing_o here_o c._n two_o n._n 2._o he_o declare_v that_o because_o when_o the_o eve_n of_o the_o passeover_n fall_v upon_o the_o friday_n the_o evening_n sacrifice_n be_v kill_v half_a a_o hour_n after_o noon_n therefore_o the_o time_n from_o which_o the_o evening_n sacrifice_n become_v due_a be_v from_o thence_o to_o half_a a_o hour_n after_o three_o which_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o great_a evening_n service_n the_o less_o be_v from_o thence_o to_o sunset_n so_o that_o he_o who_o pray_v this_o service_n from_o half_a a_o hour_n after_o twelve_o be_v disoblige_v of_o the_o debt_n of_o it_o and_o upon_o what_o term_n it_o be_v say_v either_o at_o both_o these_o hour_n or_o at_o the_o one_o according_a to_o their_o order_n it_o follow_v there_o n._n 3._o of_o these_o three_o service_n the_o hebrew_n doctor_n maimoni_fw-la as_o afore_o abenezra_n upon_o psal_n four_o 6._o r._n saadiah_n upon_o dan._n vi_fw-la 10._o constant_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o the_o psalmist_n there_o evening_n and_o morning_n and_o at_o noon_n will_v i_o pray_v and_o cry_v aloud_o and_o he_o shall_v hear_v my_o voice_n and_o that_o of_o daniel_n he_o kneel_v upon_o his_o knee_n three_o time_n a_o day_n and_o pray_v and_o give_v thanks_o before_o god_n as_o afore_o time_n whence_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o when_o s._n peter_n go_v up_o to_o pray_v upon_o the_o house_n top_n about_o the_o six_o hour_n act_v x._o 9_o his_o meaning_n be_v to_o observe_v the_o lawful_a hour_n of_o the_o evening_n service_n half_a a_o hour_n after_o noon_n though_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n he_o go_v up_o into_o the_o temple_n with_o john_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o prayer_n be_v the_o nine_o hour_n when_o this_o service_n be_v perform_v there_o in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o people_n the_o same_o which_o judith_n observe_v as_o we_o read_v judith_n ix_o 1._o about_o the_o time_n that_o the_o incense_n of_o that_o evening_n be_v offer_v in_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o lord_n judith_n cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n and_o say_v according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o psalm_n let_v my_o prayer_n be_v set_v forth_o in_o thy_o sight_n as_o the_o incense_n and_o let_v the_o lift_n up_o of_o my_o hand_n be_v a_o evening_n sacrifice_n as_o you_o hear_v afore_o that_o their_o prayer_n in_o the_o temple_n be_v offer_v at_o the_o time_n of_o incense_n thus_o the_o order_n of_o the_o synagogue_n aim_v at_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o by_o the_o law_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o temple_n in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v receive_v of_o very_o ancient_a time_n to_o pray_v at_o nine_o at_o twelve_o and_o at_o three_o afternoon_n aim_v it_o shall_v seem_v at_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o synagogue_n and_o of_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o it_o but_o with_o the_o difference_n you_o see_v that_o they_o pray_v thrice_o in_o the_o day_n time_n whereas_o the_o jew_n three_o service_n be_v at_o go_v to_o bed_n as_o you_o have_v it_o in_o maimoni_n as_o afore_o tertullian_n de_fw-fr jejun_fw-fr adv_fw-la psych_n c._n x._o show_v that_o the_o hour_n of_o nine_o and_o twelve_o and_o three_o be_v custom_v for_o prayer_n by_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o time_n by_o prove_v it_o from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o disciple_n assemble_v as_o s._n peter_n say_v act_v two_o 15._o upon_o the_o three_o hour_n of_o the_o day_n of_o s._n peter_n that_o go_v up_o to_o pray_v at_o the_o six_o hour_n and_o of_o peter_n and_o john_n that_o go_v up_o to_o the_o temple_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o prayer_n be_v the_o nine_o hour_n and_o then_o it_o follow_v quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la suadet_fw-la danielis_fw-la quoque_fw-la argumentum_fw-la ter_z die_z orantis_fw-la utique_fw-la per_fw-la aliquarum_fw-la horarum_fw-la exceptionem_fw-la non_fw-la aliarum_fw-la autem_fw-la quàm_fw-la insigniorum_fw-la exinde_fw-la apostolicarum_fw-la tertiae_fw-la sextae_fw-la nonae_fw-la hinc_fw-la itaque_fw-la &_o petrum_fw-la dicam_fw-la ex_fw-la vetere_fw-la potiùs_fw-la usu_fw-la nonam_fw-la observasse_fw-la tertio_fw-la orantem_fw-la supremae_fw-la orationis_fw-la munere_fw-la which_o also_o daniel_n his_o pray_v thrice_o a_o day_n argue_v forsooth_o except_v some_o hour_n and_o those_o no_o other_o than_o these_o of_o the_o apostle_n which_o thence_o be_v more_o notable_a the_o three_o six_o and_o nine_o hereupon_o i_o will_v say_v that_o peter_n rather_o observe_v the_o nine_o by_o ancient_a custom_n pray_v the_o three_o time_n as_o the_o last_o offering_n here_o lie_v the_o difference_n it_o be_v the_o three_o prayer_n of_o the_o day_n according_a to_o tertullian_n which_o peter_n and_o john_n offer_v at_o the_o time_n of_o evening_n sacrifice_n which_o these_o hebrew_n doctor_n make_v but_o the_o second_o whatsoever_o become_v of_o this_o difference_n as_o concern_v the_o hour_n of_o man_n private_a prayer_n the_o public_a hour_n of_o the_o temple_n observe_v by_o the_o apostle_n become_v a_o precedent_n to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n at_o their_o assembly_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v exhort_v to_o pray_v the_o lord_n prayer_n thrice_o a_o day_n according_a to_o tertullian_n seven_o 24._o they_o be_v again_o exhort_v to_o pray_v at_o other_o hour_n beside_o viij_o 36._o but_o as_o concern_v their_o assembly_n thus_o he_o instruct_v the_o bishop_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n just_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o synagogue_n allege_v out_o of_o maimoni_n two_o 58._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o in_o teach_v o_o bishop_n charge_n and_o instruct_v the_o people_n to_o be_v continual_o at_o church_n morning_n and_o evening_n every_o day_n and_o not_o absent_a at_o all_o whereas_o upon_o lord_n day_n in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o remember_v three_o service_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v those_o whereof_o the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n speak_v where_o it_o appoint_v the_o same_o service_n of_o prayer_n to_o be_v use_v both_o at_o three_o and_o at_o evening_n mean_v upon_o lord_n day_n according_a to_o these_o constitution_n it_o be_v not_o then_o this_o author_n judgement_n upon_o which_o i_o stand_v not_o but_o it_o be_v the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a disciple_n resort_v to_o the_o temple_n to_o serve_v god_n with_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o service_n there_o practise_v and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o synagogue_n but_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n by_o he_o remember_v and_o derive_v from_o their_o example_n that_o must_v needs_o recommend_v with_o great_a weight_n unto_o we_o the_o order_n of_o this_o church_n as_o concern_v daily_a morning_n and_o evening_n service_n and_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n in_o the_o reformation_n calvine_n upon_o act_n iii._o 1._o instituerat_fw-la dominus_fw-la ut_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la vesperi_fw-la &_o mane_n offerrent_fw-la hoc_fw-la exercitio_fw-la docebantur_fw-la ab_fw-la invocatione_n &_o cultu_fw-la dei_fw-la incipere_fw-la diem_fw-la &_o claudere_fw-la god_n have_v appoint_v the_o jew_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n morning_n and_o evening_n by_o this_o exercise_n they_o be_v teach_v to_o begin_v and_o close_v the_o day_n with_o call_v upon_o god_n and_o his_o service_n a_o little_a after_o primùm_fw-la quòd_fw-la statas_fw-la horas_fw-la deus_fw-la veteri_fw-la populo_fw-la esse_fw-la voluit_fw-la indè_fw-la colligimus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la career_n certâ_fw-la disciplinâ_fw-la ac_fw-la hodie_fw-la nisi_fw-la obstaret_fw-la nimius_fw-la torpor_fw-la utile_fw-la esset_fw-la quotidie_fw-la haberi_fw-la tale_n conventus_fw-la first_o whereas_o god_n appoint_v his_o ancient_a people_n set_v hour_n thence_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v without_o a_o certain_a discipline_n and_o at_o this_o day_n if_o too_o much_o dulness_n hinder_v not_o it_o be_v useful_a every_o day_n to_o hold_v such_o assembly_n of_o festival_n appoint_v by_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o synagogue_n not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n we_o have_v four_o to_o my_o remembrance_n express_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o purim_n esther_n ix_o 20._o the_o second_o the_o festival_n of_o the_o law_n upon_o tisri_n xxiii_o observe_v still_o among_o the_o jew_n for_o make_v a_o end_n of_o read_v the_o
and_o for_o all_o man_n else_o everywhere_o tertullian_n apolog._n c._n thirty-nine_o where_o he_o describe_v what_o be_v do_v at_o their_o assembly_n coimus_fw-la in_o coetum_fw-la &_o congregationem_fw-la ut_fw-la ad_fw-la deum_fw-la quasi_fw-la manu_fw-la factâ_fw-la precationibus_fw-la ambiamus_fw-la orantes_fw-la haec_fw-la vis_fw-la deo_fw-la grata_fw-la est_fw-la oramus_fw-la etiam_fw-la pro_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la pro_fw-la ministris_fw-la eorum_fw-la &_o potestatibus_fw-la pro_fw-la statu_fw-la seculi_fw-la pro_fw-la rerum_fw-la quiet_a pro_fw-la mora_fw-la finis_fw-la we_o meet_v and_o assemble_v in_o a_o congregation_n that_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o strength_n against_o god_n we_o may_v sue_v to_o he_o in_o our_o prayer_n this_o violence_n be_v welcome_a to_o god_n we_o pray_v also_o for_o emperor_n and_o their_o minister_n and_o power_n for_o the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n for_o the_o peaceable_a condition_n of_o affair_n for_o the_o delay_n of_o the_o end_n the_o particular_n of_o the_o prayer_n they_o make_v for_o the_o emperor_n be_v enlarge_v c._n thirty_o upon_o the_o occasion_n of_o compare_v the_o devotion_n of_o christian_n and_o pagan_n vitam_fw-la illis_fw-la prolixam_fw-la imperium_fw-la securum_fw-la domum_fw-la tutam_fw-la exercitus_fw-la fortes_fw-la senatum_fw-la fidelem_fw-la populum_fw-la probum_fw-la orbem_fw-la quietum_fw-la quaecunque_fw-la hominis_fw-la &_o caesaris_fw-la vota_fw-la sunt_fw-la wish_v they_o long_a life_n secure_a rule_n the_o court_n safe_a the_o army_n valiant_a the_o senate_n faithful_a the_o people_n good_a the_o world_n quiet_a whatsoever_o a_o man_n and_o cesar_n may_v desire_v tertullian_n as_o cassander_n observe_v before_o intend_v not_o to_o declare_v to_o the_o heathen_a the_o manner_n of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v to_o keep_v it_o private_a lest_o it_o may_v incur_v the_o scorn_n of_o those_o that_o understand_v not_o what_o it_o mean_v those_o which_o justine_n call_v the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o congregation_n which_o go_v next_o afore_o it_o be_v here_o describe_v by_o those_o passage_n that_o deserve_v most_o favour_n at_o the_o world_n hand_n in_o the_o 18_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v make_v in_o number_n three_o one_o that_o be_v the_o first_o in_o silence_n the_o second_o and_o three_o to_o be_v accomplish_v by_o allocution_n and_o so_o then_o the_o peace_n to_o be_v give_v that_o be_v the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n and_o so_o the_o holy_a offering_n to_o be_v make_v what_o the_o purpose_n of_o that_o prayer_n may_v be_v which_o here_o in_o the_o first_o place_n be_v prescribe_v to_o be_v make_v by_o all_o the_o people_n in_o silence_n i_o find_v not_o else_o where_o as_o for_o those_o which_o follow_v to_o be_v make_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o by_o way_n of_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n the_o matter_n be_v plain_a out_o of_o that_o which_o be_v declare_v afore_o concern_v the_o form_n of_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n in_o which_o the_o deacon_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n from_o point_n to_o point_v direct_v they_o what_o to_o desire_v of_o god_n on_o their_o behalf_n the_o people_n answer_v to_o every_o point_n lord_n have_v mercy_n which_o prayer_n be_v therefore_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o allocution_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o like_a sort_n be_v these_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o church_n direct_v by_o the_o deacon_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o particular_n express_v in_o the_o say_a constitution_n viij_o 10._o let_v we_o pray_v for_o the_o peace_n and_o firm_a state_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o may_v please_v god_n for_o the_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n that_o it_o may_v please_v god_n for_o the_o diocese_n for_o all_o bishop_n that_o god_n will_v give_v for_o the_o deacon_n and_o inferior_a minister_n for_o the_o marry_a and_o continent_n for_o those_o that_o give_v alm_n and_o oblation_n that_o god_n will_v for_o the_o sick_a and_o imprison_v for_o traveller_n by_o land_n and_o sea_n and_o the_o rest_n in_o fine_a whosoever_o shall_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o particular_n there_o relate_v shall_v perceive_v a_o very_a ancient_n if_o not_o the_o original_a pattern_n and_o use_v of_o those_o prayer_n which_o have_v since_o be_v call_v litany_n or_o supplication_n i_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o the_o use_n of_o they_o in_o procession_n for_o divert_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n in_o public_a calamity_n and_o the_o like_a occasion_n or_o of_o what_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n therein_o by_o claudianus_n mamertus_n gregory_n the_o great_a and_o other_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o original_a and_o universal_a use_n of_o they_o in_o that_o solemn_a service_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o for_o in_o all_o liturgy_n extant_a which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o ancient_a as_o the_o title_n of_o they_o pretend_v nevertheless_o retain_v the_o trace_n of_o ancient_a form_n in_o all_o part_n it_o be_v easy_o to_o be_v perceive_v both_o by_o the_o form_n of_o those_o prayer_n which_o be_v minister_v by_o the_o deacon_n the_o people_n answer_v and_o also_o by_o the_o subject_n of_o they_o concern_v all_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o prosperous_a condition_n of_o it_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o those_o common_a prayer_n whereof_o justine_n martyr_n of_o so_o ancient_a time_n speak_v according_a to_o the_o form_n practise_v at_o several_a time_n and_o in_o several_a place_n true_a it_o be_v that_o in_o those_o ancient_a liturgy_n they_o come_v not_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o hearer_n as_o in_o justine_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o when_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o hearer_n be_v retain_v in_o a_o manner_n for_o fashion_n sake_n in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o ancient_a custom_n the_o reason_n of_o it_o be_v cease_v when_o the_o world_n be_v become_v christian_a it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o think_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o service_n depend_v upon_o it_o may_v change_v the_o substance_n nevertheless_o remain_v as_o descend_v original_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o though_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a for_o i_o to_o give_v account_n why_o the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n prescribe_v two_o of_o these_o prayer_n to_o be_v make_v divide_v it_o into_o two_o or_o repeat_v it_o twice_o yet_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o any_o man_n to_o observe_v especial_o in_o the_o liturgy_n entitle_v to_o s._n basil_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n that_o these_o prayer_n be_v divers_a time_n repeat_v whether_o in_o brief_a or_o at_o large_a that_o fashion_n so_o far_o comply_v with_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o canon_n as_o to_o show_v we_o that_o those_o be_v the_o prayer_n where_o of_o it_o speak_v the_o subject_n of_o they_o be_v thus_o comprise_v in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o constitution_n two_o 51._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v the_o deacon_n pray_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o all_o the_o world_n and_o the_o part_n of_o it_o for_o fruitful_a season_n for_o the_o priest_n and_o ruler_n for_o the_o bishop_n and_o king_n and_o the_o general_a peace_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v call_v in_o the_o greekish_a liturgy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o prayer_n for_o peace_n because_o the_o beginning_n of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v for_o the_o peaceable_a and_o quiet_a state_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n it_o be_v also_o in_o some_o of_o they_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o the_o general_a collect._n from_o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o prayer_n whereof_o tertullian_n speak_v the_o subject_n where_o of_o he_o express_v pro_fw-la statu_fw-la seculi_fw-la pro_fw-la rerum_fw-la quiet_a for_o the_o settle_a and_o quiet_a state_n of_o the_o world_n that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o this_o prayer_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n now_o extant_a not_o only_o in_o those_o greekish_a one_o under_o the_o name_n of_o s._n james_n s._n mark_n s._n basil_n s._n chrysostome_n but_o in_o the_o ethiopic_a in_o that_o of_o the_o christian_n of_o s._n thomas_n in_o india_n in_o that_o of_o the_o maronites_n print_v at_o rome_n it_o take_v place_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n describe_v of_o the_o service_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n the_o like_a can_v be_v say_v the_o litany_n whereof_o this_o prayer_n be_v the_o source_n be_v use_v upon_o several_a particular_a occasion_n in_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v now_o but_o have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o it_o unless_o we_o suppose_v the_o kyrie_fw-la cleeson_fw-mi
priest_n use_v to_o make_v supplication_n for_o all_o pray_v for_o the_o king_n of_o this_o world_n that_o they_o may_v hold_v the_o nation_n subject_a that_o settle_v in_o peace_n we_o may_v be_v able_a to_o serve_v our_o god_n with_o tranquillity_n and_o quiet_a of_o mind_n pray_v also_o for_o those_o that_o be_v trust_v with_o high_a power_n that_o they_o may_v govern_v the_o commonwealth_n in_o justice_n and_o truth_n with_o abundance_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o the_o trouble_n of_o sedition_n be_v remove_v gladness_n may_v succeed_v when_o he_o call_v it_o the_o rule_n of_o that_o service_n which_o their_o priest_n minister_v it_o be_v plain_a he_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v the_o prayer_n which_o be_v make_v at_o the_o lord_n board_n at_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n beside_o the_o brief_a which_o he_o relate_v contain_v the_o chief_a particular_n of_o that_o form_n produce_v out_o of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o s._n augustine_n ep._n lix_o in_o the_o word_n partly_o relate_v afore_o partly_o to_o be_v relate_v afterward_o acknowledge_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o service_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o to_o be_v prescribe_v in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o this_o purpose_n to_o prove_v there_o need_v no_o great_a dispute_n the_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n gather_v from_o the_o marvellous_a agreement_n of_o all_o ancient_a form_n of_o service_n that_o remain_v speak_v aloud_o that_o this_o prayer_n for_o all_o man_n at_o the_o eucharist_n whereof_o we_o speak_v come_v from_o the_o order_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o seem_v therefore_o to_o i_o most_o probable_a that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v this_o and_o so_o be_v understand_v and_o practise_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a church_n that_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n supplication_n and_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n etc._n etc._n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o force_v or_o strain_v to_o take_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o thanksgiving_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o passage_n of_o clemens_n and_o ignatius_n allege_v afore_o for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o whole_a action_n and_o all_o the_o prayer_n which_o it_o be_v celebrate_v with_o and_o otherwise_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n will_v be_v altogether_o impertinent_a for_o in_o the_o common_a and_o general_a sense_n of_o this_o word_n thanksgiving_n it_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o exhort_v that_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o so_o forth_o that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n but_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o exhort_v that_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o their_o rule_n and_o government_n we_o may_v lead_v a_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n and_o it_o be_v proper_a enough_o to_o exhort_v that_o thanksgiving_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n to_o that_o purpose_n understand_v by_o thanksgiving_n that_o action_n of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n part_v whereof_o be_v those_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n and_o thus_o as_o in_o lieu_n of_o spiritual_a grace_n in_o prayer_n which_o be_v use_v to_o make_v supplication_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o all_o member_n and_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o s._n chrysostome_n allege_v afore_o prayer_n afterward_o in_o most_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v indict_v by_o the_o deacon_n and_o make_v by_o the_o people_n which_o for_o the_o manner_n and_o substance_n both_o be_v conceive_v afore_o to_o be_v the_o original_a of_o those_o that_o since_o have_v be_v call_v litany_n so_o nevertheless_o to_o give_v effect_n to_o this_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v a_o ancient_a and_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o make_v supplication_n and_o prayer_n at_o the_o lord_n board_n at_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n though_o much_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n with_o the_o former_a for_o all_o state_n of_o man_n but_o of_o the_o church_n in_o particular_a and_o this_o nice_a observation_n if_o it_o may_v take_v place_n will_v be_v of_o great_a consequence_n to_o out_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o all_o pretence_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o in_o particular_a in_o the_o style_n and_o tenor_n of_o the_o liturgy_n themselves_o which_o for_o the_o great_a agreement_n between_o themselves_o &_o with_o the_o style_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a church-writer_n seem_v to_o contain_v and_o express_v it_o for_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v call_v a_o oblation_n or_o sacrifice_n in_o all_o liturgy_n according_a to_o the_o style_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a church-writer_n not_o as_o consecrate_v but_o as_o present_v and_o offer_v whether_o by_o the_o people_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v to_o he_o that_o minister_v or_o by_o he_o that_o minister_v to_o god_n to_o be_v consecrate_v as_o aforesaid_a it_o be_v the_o style_n of_o the_o form_n produce_v out_o of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o this_o bread_n and_o this_o cup_n beseech_v thou_o that_o they_o may_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o soul_n health_n of_o they_o that_o receive_v or_o to_o that_o purpose_n thus_o far_o there_o be_v no_o pretence_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o suppose_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n present_a as_o the_o subject_n of_o it_o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o style_n of_o this_o prayer_n whereof_o we_o speak_v in_o divers_a point_n of_o divers_a liturgy_n run_v in_o the_o term_n of_o we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o for_o such_o and_o such_o for_o this_o and_o that_o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o this_o prayer_n come_v not_o after_o the_o consecration_n in_o all_o liturgy_n and_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o all_o church_n to_o give_v occasion_n to_o think_v that_o the_o meaning_n be_v to_o offer_v christ_n there_o present_a by_o consecration_n for_o the_o say_a person_n and_o cause_n but_o go_v afore_o it_o in_o divers_a as_o have_v be_v say_v the_o purpose_n of_o it_o be_v to_o execute_v the_o apostle_n exhortation_n to_o make_v prayer_n supplication_n and_o intercession_n for_o all_o man_n at_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n beside_o it_o be_v not_o where_o say_v we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o such_o person_n and_o cause_n but_o it_o be_v divers_a time_n say_v we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o reasonable_a service_n and_o what_o be_v that_o but_o these_o prayer_n for_o in_o the_o form_n allege_v it_o be_v say_v at_o some_o point_n we_o pray_v thou_o for_o the_o church_n and_o for_o the_o king_n at_o other_o we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o for_o this_o people_n and_o for_o the_o weather_n and_o fruitful_a season_n and_o shall_v we_o not_o think_v they_o both_o to_o stand_v in_o one_o sense_n it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o this_o prayer_n be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n exhortation_n to_o make_v prayer_n and_o supplication_n &_o thanksgiving_n for_o all_o man_n and_o it_o have_v be_v declare_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o his_o exhortation_n be_v that_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n such_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n be_v make_v therefore_o when_o it_o be_v say_v by_o name_n in_o the_o form_n relate_v out_o of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o for_o this_o people_n we_o offer_v unto_o thou_o for_o the_o weather_n and_o fruitful_a season_n what_o shall_v hinder_v the_o meaning_n to_o be_v according_a at_o this_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o confidence_n that_o thou_o hear_v thy_o son_n for_o we_o at_o this_o remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n and_o in_o obedience_n to_o thy_o apostle_n we_o pray_v unto_o thou_o for_o such_o person_n and_o cause_n as_o it_o be_v in_o express_a term_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o indian_a christian_n hâc_fw-la enim_fw-la horâ_fw-la quâ_fw-la patri_fw-la tuo_fw-la sacrificium_fw-la offertur_fw-la rogo_fw-la majestatem_fw-la tuam_fw-la miserere_fw-la omnium_fw-la creaturarum_fw-la for_o at_o this_o hour_n when_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o thy_o father_n i_o pray_v thy_o majesty_n have_v mercy_n on_o all_o creature_n and_o thus_o so_o often_o as_o we_o read_v in_o church-writer_n of_o offer_v for_o such_o and_o such_o person_n and_o cause_n the_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o offer_v the_o element_n in_o which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v that_o with_o it_o they_o may_v pray_v for_o those_o person_n or_o cause_n
down_o their_o throat_n the_o form_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v relate_v afore_o ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la fiat_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la silij_fw-la tui_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la and_o it_o be_v show_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o these_o word_n nevertheless_o because_o there_o may_v be_v offence_n take_v at_o the_o word_n upon_o the_o sense_n of_o those_o that_o use_v they_o we_o see_v they_o alter_v into_o those_o term_n wherein_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v be_v most_o excellent_o express_v to_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o these_o word_n hear_v we_o o_o merciful_a father_n and_o those_o which_o follow_v in_o like_a sort_n because_o the_o very_a term_n of_o offer_v and_o sacrifice_n though_o use_v with_o a_o far_o other_o meaning_n then_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profess_v seem_v to_o sound_v their_o meaning_n it_o be_v not_o only_o remove_v out_o of_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o whole_a state_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o the_o prayer_n itself_o remove_v to_o stand_v afore_o the_o consecration_n as_o we_o conjecture_v it_o do_v stand_v in_o the_o african_a church_n and_o not_o after_o it_o to_o give_v opinion_n that_o christ_n present_a by_o consecration_n be_v sacrifice_v then_o for_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n imagine_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o service_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o shall_v need_v to_o say_v nothing_o have_v show_v that_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o with_o we_o the_o time_n of_o communicate_v be_v transact_v with_o psalm_n after_o that_o thanksgiving_n the_o dismission_n upon_o that_o the_o people_n be_v dismiss_v with_o the_o blessing_n in_o our_o service_n as_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a form_n relate_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o france_n though_o they_o use_v that_o of_o moses_n still_o frequent_v by_o the_o synagogue_n in_o the_o service_n prescribe_v for_o lord_n day_n and_o festival_n when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o celebrate_v it_o be_v not_o strange_a if_o something_o be_v add_v above_o the_o ordinary_a course_n to_o make_v it_o more_o solemn_a though_o it_o have_v be_v rather_o to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o world_n be_v dispose_v for_o the_o true_a solemnity_n of_o it_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o law_n call_v we_o to_o mind_v our_o offence_n and_o move_v to_o crave_v pardon_n and_o grace_n for_o the_o future_a nothing_o to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n the_o lesson_n of_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n belong_v indeed_o to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o service_n as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o shall_v we_o take_v they_o to_o come_v from_o the_o mass_n where_o they_o be_v last_o find_v or_o from_o s._n hierome_n from_o who_o they_o seem_v first_o to_o have_v come_v and_o be_v it_o not_o convenient_a in_o they_o to_o remember_v what_o the_o church_n celebrate_v at_o several_a season_n and_o solemnity_n of_o the_o year_n and_o to_o promote_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n and_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o faith_n by_o give_v preacher_n a_o subject_n of_o their_o sermon_n suitable_a to_o those_o solemnity_n last_o of_o all_o though_o the_o world_n be_v not_o dispose_v to_o the_o continual_a celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n yet_o be_v it_o requisite_a in_o reverence_n to_o the_o apostle_n order_n and_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v use_v at_o almost_o all_o solemn_a assembly_n which_o because_o it_o always_o go_v along_o with_o the_o eucharist_n as_o it_o be_v use_v serve_v to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n what_o be_v want_v in_o fine_a though_o all_o form_n of_o service_n devise_v by_o man_n must_v needs_o remain_v disputable_a and_o happy_a it_o be_v when_o so_o they_o be_v but_o upon_o slight_a matter_n so_o my_o hope_n be_v that_o from_o hence_o will_v appear_v that_o the_o form_n which_o we_o use_v deserve_v this_o commendation_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o alter_v it_o for_o the_o better_a but_o easy_a to_o alter_v it_o for_o the_o worse_o thus_o far_o upon_o the_o principle_n propound_v in_o the_o beginning_n of_o thing_n remember_v in_o the_o scripture_n concern_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o expound_v they_o i_o have_v discourse_v the_o substance_n and_o form_n of_o god_n public_a service_n at_o solemn_a assembly_n for_o that_o purpose_n the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o and_o the_o particular_a form_n which_o we_o use_v of_o the_o rest_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n and_o the_o course_n we_o use_v in_o they_o it_o be_v not_o my_o purpose_n to_o say_v any_o thing_n at_o the_o present_a in_o which_o nevertheless_o the_o reason_n hitherto_o dispute_v will_v easy_o take_v place_n to_o show_v both_o that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o be_v solemn_a and_o by_o prescript_n form_n and_o that_o the_o form_n which_o we_o use_v be_v exceed_o commendable_a chap._n xi_o how_o the_o form_n of_o public_a service_n be_v order_v dependence_n of_o church_n be_v from_o the_o apostle_n for_o that_o and_o other_o purpose_n how_o the_o preach_n of_o lie_v man_n import_v schism_n the_o good_a of_o the_o order_n of_o public_a service_n and_o now_o without_o further_a dispute_n it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v what_o be_v prescribe_v concern_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o what_o be_v leave_v to_o be_v order_v by_o humane_a appointment_n the_o particular_a office_n whereof_o it_o consist_v of_o public_a prayer_n and_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n of_o read_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v prescribe_v and_o recommend_v to_o the_o church_n in_o the_o rule_n and_o practice_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o order_n and_o form_n in_o which_o they_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v be_v acknowledge_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v prescript_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o where_o prescribe_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o leave_v to_o humane_a ordinance_n that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v preach_v be_v acknowledge_v on_o all_o hand_n to_o be_v refer_v for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o the_o private_a endeavour_n of_o particular_a person_n not_o in_o respect_n to_o any_o immediate_a inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n otherwise_o to_o be_v quench_v but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o instruct_v and_o admonish_v whole_a congregation_n in_o that_o which_o most_o concern_v they_o of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n public_a prayer_n some_o think_v be_v to_o be_v minister_v according_a to_o the_o disposition_n and_o discretion_n of_o particular_a guide_n of_o particular_a congregation_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o apostle_n ordinance_n forbid_v to_o quench_v the_o spirit_n here_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o because_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o pray_v by_o immediate_a inspiration_n be_v not_o now_o extant_a therefore_o the_o purpose_n of_o this_o ordinance_n cease_v and_o that_o the_o ordinary_a rule_n of_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v attain_v by_o the_o order_n and_o comeliness_n of_o these_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v at_o public_a assembly_n be_v follow_v to_o far_o more_o purpose_n in_o the_o use_n of_o a_o form_n prescript_n and_o uniform_a it_o be_v further_a here_o to_o be_v observe_v that_o whatsoever_o may_v concern_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o truth_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o recommendation_n of_o it_o be_v most_o effectual_o to_o be_v procure_v as_o procure_v it_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o the_o dependence_n of_o church_n visible_o derive_v from_o the_o appointment_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o have_v be_v declare_v that_o according_a to_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n ordain_v presbyter_n through_o the_o church_n act_n fourteen_o 22._o according_a to_o that_o which_o titus_n be_v instruct_v to_o ordain_v presbyter_n through_o the_o city_n titus_n 1_o 3._o that_o be_v college_n of_o presbyter_n to_o order_v the_o church_n found_v in_o populous_a city_n so_o throughout_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v all_o church_n of_o city_n think_v meet_v for_o their_o greatness_n whether_o institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o propagate_v thence_o govern_v by_o presbytery_n or_o college_n of_o presbyter_n the_o head_n whereof_o be_v bishop_n in_o succession_n to_o the_o apostle_n we_o know_v the_o gospel_n attain_v to_o the_o country_n and_o territory_n lie_v under_o these_o city_n upon_o the_o preach_n of_o
man_n and_o woman_n vail_v or_o uncover_v their_o head_n in_o those_o assembly_n and_o concern_v celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n with_o the_o feast_n of_o love_n use_v then_o at_o common_a meeting_n with_o the_o ground_n whereupon_o they_o proceed_v add_v to_o both_o such_o passage_n of_o scripture_n as_o fall_v in_o with_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o speak_v home_n to_o what_o be_v do_v or_o prescribe_v to_o be_v do_v at_o their_o religious_a assembly_n perhaps_o by_o this_o mean_v we_o shall_v be_v furnish_v of_o such_o principle_n and_o such_o rule_v derive_v thence_o as_o the_o scripture_n afford_v the_o church_n to_o proceed_v upon_o as_o well_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n as_o in_o the_o form_n and_o course_n and_o circumstance_n of_o it_o and_o this_o upon_o the_o by_o will_v minister_v just_a occasion_n to_o inquire_v further_o into_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o grace_n and_o ministery_n by_o which_o the_o several_a part_n of_o this_o work_n be_v exercise_v at_o that_o time_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n or_o intend_v to_o be_v exercise_v in_o after_o age_n to_o which_o point_n have_v say_v something_o of_o late_a in_o a_o little_a tract_n of_o the_o primitive_a government_n of_o church_n and_o find_v it_o too_o much_o slight_v there_o because_o the_o particular_a discourse_n of_o it_o suit_v not_o with_o the_o model_n of_o that_o treatise_n my_o desire_n be_v to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n upon_o this_o occasion_n once_o more_o and_o inquire_v what_o further_a satisfaction_n the_o consideration_n of_o public_a service_n at_o their_o religious_a assembly_n will_v yield_v they_o that_o desire_v the_o truth_n as_o concern_v the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o ministery_n first_o institute_v for_o that_o purpose_n chap._n ii_o day_n of_o assembly_n appoint_v by_o the_o law_n the_o moral_a service_n of_o god_n not_o specify_v in_o it_o but_o collect_v from_o it_o how_o the_o jew_n be_v tax_v for_o spend_v the_o sabbath_n in_o pastime_n place_n of_o such_o assembly_n not_o provide_v in_o it_o the_o priest_n charge_v to_o teach_v the_o law_n by_o decide_v controversy_n of_o it_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n the_o chair_n of_o prophet_n high_a place_n to_o what_o purpose_n begin_v of_o synagogue_n disciple_n of_o prophet_n study_v to_o be_v prophet_n they_o minister_v the_o moral_a service_n of_o god_n in_o high_a place_n and_o synagogue_n of_o the_o figurative_a service_n proper_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n and_o that_o people_n which_o receive_v it_o of_o the_o kind_n and_o time_n and_o place_n for_o offer_v sacrifice_n there_o be_v particular_a appointment_n in_o it_o but_o of_o serve_v god_n by_o prayer_n or_o hear_v his_o word_n you_o have_v there_o so_o much_o the_o less_o remembrance_n in_o leviticus_n xxiii_o we_o find_v the_o particular_a of_o all_o their_o solemnity_n that_o be_v call_v holy_a assembly_n for_o thus_o the_o general_n be_v propound_v vers_fw-la 2._o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o you_o shall_v proclaim_v for_o holy_a convocation_n these_o be_v my_o assembly_n the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v the_o sabbath_n than_o the_o passeover_n pentecost_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o new_a year_n the_o day_n of_o atonement_n and_o the_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n and_o with_o leave_n i_o rather_o use_v the_o word_n assembly_n than_o feast_n in_o this_o place_n because_o the_o name_n of_o feast_n be_v proper_a to_o those_o solemnity_n which_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o joy_n and_o chearfulnesse_n whereas_o in_o this_o number_n the_o day_n of_o atonement_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v with_o the_o great_a humiliation_n that_o can_v be_v express_v the_o original_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d contain_v all_o assembly_n such_o as_o all_o these_o be_v command_v to_o be_v and_o as_o i_o take_v it_o none_o else_o for_o that_o which_o be_v read_v psal_n lxxxi_o 3._o blow_v up_o the_o trumpet_n in_o the_o new_a moon_n in_o the_o time_n appoint_v against_o the_o day_n of_o our_o feast_n depend_v upon_o the_o law_n numb_a x._o 10._o also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o your_o gladness_n and_o in_o your_o solemn_a feast_n day_n or_o rather_o day_n of_o assembly_n for_o the_o word_n be_v the_o same_o that_o i_o translate_v so_o afore_o and_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o your_o month_n you_o shall_v blow_v with_o your_o trumpet_n over_o the_o burnt-offering_n and_o over_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o your_o peace-offering_n that_o they_o may_v be_v to_o you_o for_o a_o memorial_n before_o your_o god_n where_o we_o see_v three_o sort_n of_o solemnity_n distinguish_v first_o the_o day_n of_o your_o gladness_n contain_v solemnity_n to_o be_v celebrate_v with_o chearfulnesse_n of_o heart_n that_o be_v feast_n then_o the_o solemn_a day_n of_o assembly_n as_o the_o word_n signify_v contain_v beside_o those_o assembly_n for_o humiliation_n as_o the_o day_n of_o atonement_n and_o last_o the_o beginning_n of_o your_o month_n wherein_o peculiar_a sacrifice_n be_v enjoin_v numb_a xxviii_o 11._o and_o here_o it_o be_v provide_v that_o trumpet_n shall_v be_v sound_v over_o those_o sacrifice_n by_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o that_o no_o assembly_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v upon_o they_o the_o difference_n here_o make_v between_o they_o and_o their_o day_n of_o assembly_n be_v presumption_n enough_o but_o in_o particular_a the_o first_o and_o last_o day_n of_o the_o passeover_n and_o feast_n of_o tabernacle_n the_o one_o whereof_o be_v keep_v for_o seven_o day_n the_o other_o for_o eight_o be_v to_o be_v solemn_a assembly_n which_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o and_o therefore_o in_o the_o greek_a of_o the_o septuagint_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o great_a day_n to_o wit_n of_o those_o feast_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o less_o esay_n i._n 13._o the_o new_a moon_n and_o sabbath_n the_o call_n of_o assembly_n i_o can_v away_o with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o call_n of_o assembly_n be_v here_o translate_v great_a day_n as_o in_o the_o gospel_n john_n seven_o 37._o in_o the_o last_o day_n the_o great_a day_n of_o that_o feast_n by_o which_o translation_n that_o which_o be_v general_a in_o the_o original_a be_v restrain_v to_o the_o first_o and_o last_o day_n of_o those_o two_o festival_n now_o the_o sabbath_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o solemnity_n appoint_v for_o assembly_n for_o they_o be_v command_v so_o to_o rest_v from_o bodily_a labour_n as_o not_o to_o kindle_v fire_n to_o dress_v the_o meat_n they_o eat_v upon_o it_o for_o as_o in_o exod._n xuj_o 5_o 16_o 29._o god_n conte_v that_o he_o give_v they_o a_o double_a measure_n of_o manna_n the_o day_n before_o that_o they_o may_v dress_v it_o against_o the_o sabbath_n so_o we_o have_v again_o exod._n thirty_o 3._o you_o shall_v kindle_v no_o fire_n throughout_o your_o habitation_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n the_o same_o levit._n xxiii_o 3._o where_o abenezra_n in_o all_o your_o habitation_n that_o be_v in_o your_o land_n and_o out_o of_o your_o land_n at_o home_n and_o upon_o the_o way_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o time_n that_o they_o live_v upon_o manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n that_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o kindle_v fire_n upon_o the_o sabbath_n but_o through_o all_z their_o habitation_n wheresoever_o they_o dwell_v afterward_o and_o many_o have_v observe_v that_o in_o levit._n xxiii_o it_o be_v not_o say_v of_o any_o other_o day_n but_o of_o the_o sabbath_n and_o the_o day_n of_o atonement_n thou_o shall_v do_v no_o work_n upon_o it_o but_o of_o the_o other_o day_n of_o assembly_n thou_o shall_v do_v no_o servile_a work_n upon_o they_o to_o show_v we_o the_o difference_n between_o they_o that_o upon_o the_o sabbath_n and_o day_n of_o atonement_n it_o be_v prohibit_v to_o dress_v the_o meat_n of_o the_o day_n but_o upon_o other_o solemnity_n that_o be_v permit_v but_o to_o do_v any_o work_v that_o man_n be_v wont_a to_o put_v their_o slave_n to_o be_v prohibit_v which_o be_v the_o receive_a practice_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o have_v a_o just_a ground_n in_o the_o scripture_n exod._n twelve_o 16._o where_o of_o the_o first_o and_o last_o day_n of_o the_o passeover_n be_v say_v no_o manner_n of_o work_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o they_o save_o that_o which_o every_o man_n must_v eat_v that_o only_o may_v be_v do_v or_o dress_v of_o you_o abenezra_n upon_o that_o place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o none_o of_o the_o solemn_a assembly_n beside_o the_o sabbath_n and_o day_n of_o atonement_n it_o be_v say_v nomanner_n of_o work_n only_o of_o the_o passeover_n he_o say_v it_o and_o add_v a_o exception_n of_o the_o meat_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o be_v requisite_a for_o the_o sustenance_n of_o nature_n here_o be_v a_o strict_a command_n of_o bodily_a
government_n or_o care_n or_o whatsoever_o you_o please_v to_o call_v it_o of_o the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n as_o by_o the_o charge_n of_o teach_v the_o people_n both_o part_n ascribe_v to_o they_o that_o bear_v the_o rank_n and_o style_n of_o presbyter_n act_n xx_o 29._o 1._o pet._n v._o 2._o 1._o tim._n iiii_o 2_o 5._o titus_n i_o 7_o 9_o 1._o thess_n v._o 22._o true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n be_v of_o itself_o a_o mere_a spiritual_a commonwealth_n not_o endue_v with_o any_o temporal_a power_n to_o enforce_v by_o way_n of_o constraint_n the_o effect_n of_o those_o ministery_n which_o they_o stand_v trust_v with_o before_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o the_o world_n be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n they_o come_v to_o effect_v by_o the_o voluntary_a consent_n of_o christian_n the_o same_o good_a will_n that_o move_v they_o to_o become_v such_o be_v enough_o to_o prevail_v with_o they_o to_o yield_v effect_n to_o those_o ministery_n which_o god_n have_v provide_v for_o the_o maintenance_n and_o propagation_n of_o it_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o present_a separation_n be_v derive_v from_o hence_o that_o hereupon_o ordination_n and_o censure_n be_v to_o pass_v by_o voice_n of_o the_o congregation_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o true_a it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n time_n these_o matter_n pass_v at_o their_o religious_a assembly_n under_o the_o sight_n and_o conscience_n as_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v that_o be_v under_o the_o notice_n of_o the_o people_n ordination_n be_v allow_v by_o they_o as_o not_o have_v to_o except_v against_o the_o person_n reproof_n and_o censure_n be_v their_o reproof_n and_o censure_n for_o they_o reprove_v and_o cast_v out_o those_o who_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n sentence_v to_o it_o 2._o cor._n two_o 6._o sufficient_a to_o such_o a_o one_o be_v the_o rebuke_n by_o the_o many_o the_o congregation_n must_v needs_o rebuke_v he_o who_o they_o put_v from_o their_o body_n to_o give_v effect_n to_o the_o apostle_n sentence_n 1._o cor._n v._n 4._o to_o show_v we_o the_o meaning_n and_o extent_n of_o his_o word_n there_o vers_n 12._o for_o what_o have_v i_o to_o do_v to_o judge_v those_o that_o be_v without_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v those_o that_o be_v within_o the_o apostle_n censure_v and_o the_o people_n censure_v the_o difference_n of_o their_o right_n and_o charge_n be_v in_o the_o three_o verse_n express_v in_o the_o case_n i_o new_o have_v judge_v or_o determine_v already_o that_o he_o be_v deliver_v to_o satan_n at_o one_o of_o your_o assembly_n that_o be_v solemn_o put_v from_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o faction_n then_o on_o foot_n among_o the_o presbyter_n as_o have_v be_v show_v else_o where_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o person_n in_o fault_n be_v bear_v out_o by_o a_o side_n of_o the_o people_n especial_o if_o we_o believe_v s._n chrysostome_n that_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o pastor_n the_o apostle_n be_v so_o charitable_a to_o expect_v the_o people_n consent_n in_o ordination_n and_o censure_n that_o they_o mean_v not_o to_o betray_v their_o own_o right_n with_o god_n cause_n judge_n whether_o he_o proceed_v upon_o voice_n that_o incharge_v they_o to_o execure_v his_o sentence_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v i_o condemn_v and_o you_o candemne_v but_o how_o shall_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n belong_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n if_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o people_n 1._o pet._n v._o 2._o feed_v the_o stock_n of_o god_n overseeing_a not_o upon_o constraint_n but_o willing_o not_o as_o lord_v it_o over_o the_o heritage_n but_o as_o ensample_n to_o the_o flock_n 1._o thess_n v._o 12._o know_v they_o which_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o be_v overdo_n you_o in_o the_o lord_n titus_n i_o 7._o a_o bishop_n must_v be_v blameless_a as_o the_o steward_n of_o god_n endue_v with_o those_o quality_n that_o follow_v not_o concern_v preach_v but_o government_n the_o like_a 1._o tim._n iii._o 2_o 3_o 4_o and_z vers_n 5._o if_o a_o man_n know_v not_o how_o to_o rule_v his_o own_o house_n how_o shall_v he_o take_v care_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n rom._n twelve_o 8._o he_o that_o rule_v with_o diligence_n hebr._n xiii_o 17._o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n overdo_n you_o or_o guide_v you_o be_v all_o this_o obedience_n no_o more_o then_o to_o give_v they_o the_o hear_n when_o they_o preach_v who_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o yield_v obedience_n according_a to_o this_o general_a charge_n if_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o ordination_n and_o censure_n belong_v as_o well_o to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n in_o these_o particular_n enough_o have_v be_v say_v and_o the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o they_o in_o the_o church_n be_v enough_o to_o interpret_v the_o meaning_n of_o those_o scripture_n to_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o man_n that_o will_v use_v it_o tertullian_n apologet._n c._n thirty-nine_o speak_v of_o their_o assembly_n ibidem_fw-la etiam_fw-la exhortationes_fw-la castigationes_fw-la &_o censura_fw-la divina_fw-la president_n probati_fw-la quique_fw-la seniores_fw-la he_o tell_v we_o that_o exhortation_n reproof_n and_o spiritual_a censure_n pass_v at_o their_o assembly_n but_o under_o the_o presidence_n of_o their_o presbyter_n firm._n epist_n ixxu._n cypr_fw-la omnis_fw-la potest_fw-la as_n &_o gratia_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la constituta_fw-la est_fw-la in_o qua_fw-la president_n majores_fw-la natu_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o baptizandt_fw-ge &_o manum_fw-la imponendi_fw-la &_o ordinandi_fw-la habent_fw-la potestatem_fw-la all_o power_n and_o favour_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o church_n in_o which_o the_o presbyter_n be_v precedent_n which_o have_v power_n both_o to_o baptize_v to_o impose_v hand_n in_o penance_n and_o to_o ordain_v all_o my_o meaning_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o word_n some_o of_o s._n cyprian_n presbyter_n make_v a_o side_n of_o the_o people_n to_o admit_v the_o lapse_v to_o communicate_v without_o penance_n upon_o petition_n of_o the_o imprison_a towards_o martydome_n s._n cyprian_n neither_o neglect_v the_o danger_n of_o schism_n nor_o sit_v down_o to_o tell_v voice_n which_o if_o that_o be_v the_o right_n in_o conscience_n must_v carry_v it_o but_o cast_v about_o with_o authority_n to_o reduce_v the_o people_n and_o their_o leader_n to_o acknowledge_v themselves_o he_o complain_v that_o the_o people_n be_v debauch_v by_o some_o of_o his_o clergy_n that_o aught_o to_o have_v keep_v they_o in_o discipline_n and_o instruct_v they_o to_o desire_v no_o man_n reconcilement_n before_o penance_n lib._n iii._o ep._n 14_o 16._o he_o write_v to_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n that_o they_o shall_v give_v account_n of_o what_o they_o do_v to_o he_o and_o the_o clergy_n to_o the_o confessor_n and_o to_o the_o people_n ep._n 14._o to_o the_o people_n he_o write_v to_o advise_v and_o rule_v those_o that_o be_v so_o irregular_a in_o their_o demand_n ep._n 16._o but_o he_o resolve_v as_o a_o cause_n that_o concern_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o proceed_v without_o advice_n of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n praesente_fw-la &_o stantium_fw-la plebe_fw-la quibus_fw-la &_o ipsis_fw-la pro_fw-la timore_fw-la &_o fide_fw-la svo_fw-la honour_n habendus_fw-la est_fw-la ep._n 18._o in_o presence_n of_o those_o of_o the_o people_n that_o fall_v not_o to_o who_o respect_n be_v to_o be_v have_v for_o the_o faith_n and_o fear_v they_o have_v show_v he_o yield_v respect_n unto_o his_o people_n to_o encourage_v their_o obedience_n but_o in_o who_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n rest_v he_o show_v ep._n 16._o cùm_fw-la in_o minoribus_fw-la delictis_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la committuntur_fw-la poenitentia_fw-la agatur_fw-la justo_fw-la tempore_fw-la &_o exomologesis_fw-la fiat_fw-la inspectâ_fw-la vitâ_fw-la ejus_fw-la qui_fw-la agit_fw-fr poenitentiam_fw-la nec_fw-la ad_fw-la communicationem_fw-la venire_fw-la quis_fw-la possit_fw-la nisi_fw-la priùs_fw-la illi_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopo_fw-la &_o clero_fw-la manus_fw-la fuerit_fw-la imposita_fw-la see_v inlesse_a fault_n that_o be_v not_o do_v against_o god_n man_n do_v penance_n their_o due_a time_n and_o come_v to_o confession_n upon_o consideration_n of_o the_o life_n of_o he_o that_o do_v penance_n and_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o communicate_v unless_o first_o hand_n be_v lay_v on_o he_o by_o the_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n show_v i_o any_o share_n of_o the_o people_n in_o determine_v the_o measure_n of_o penance_n or_o in_o release_n the_o person_n and_o let_v it_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o key_n of_o god_n house_n belong_v to_o the_o people_n and_o this_o be_v their_o interest_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o that_o give_v they_o right_o of_o decide_v controversy_n because_o they_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n act_v xv_o 12_o 22_o 23._o
may_v please_v to_o consider_v s._n cyprian_n order_n which_o allow_v their_o presence_n for_o their_o satisfaction_n not_o their_o voice_n to_o decide_v as_o they_o be_v present_a at_o counsel_n but_o not_o call_v to_o give_v sentence_n but_o since_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n be_v become_v christian_n the_o law_n of_o those_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n as_o they_o enforce_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n to_o execute_v their_o office_n according_a to_o such_o rule_n as_o they_o enforce_v so_o they_o constrain_v the_o people_n to_o yield_v outward_a effect_n to_o the_o same_o the_o good_a order_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v preserve_v otherwise_o all_o this_o while_n the_o office_n of_o minister_n continue_v the_o same_o no_o part_n of_o it_o accru_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n by_o become_v christian_n they_o purchase_v themselves_o no_o more_o right_a than_o the_o charge_n of_o maintain_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n in_o do_v their_o office_n contain_v only_o as_o all_o christian_n have_v the_o judgement_n of_o particular_a discretion_n to_o discharge_v unto_o god_n even_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o account_n of_o what_o themselves_o do_v so_o be_v this_o judgement_n of_o particular_a discretion_n by_o public_a person_n but_o most_o by_o the_o sovereign_n of_o right_n employ_v in_o all_o that_o in_o which_o they_o lend_v or_o refuse_v their_o assistance_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o office_n always_o under_o the_o account_n due_a to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o sovereign_n what_o be_v then_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o which_o we_o read_v in_o these_o day_n that_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n exercise_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o it_o even_o that_o of_o excommunicate_v call_v it_o jurisdiction_n for_o the_o present_a though_o the_o term_n be_v proper_a where_o there_o be_v power_n to_o constrain_v be_v inherent_a and_o derive_v in_o and_o from_o the_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v in_o our_o particular_a from_o the_o crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v by_o just_a and_o due_a consequence_n that_o the_o office_n charge_v upon_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v execute_v by_o they_o of_o right_a so_o long_o as_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n be_v enemy_n of_o the_o faith_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o the_o church_n do_v under_o the_o empire_n before_o it_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n be_v a_o attempt_n upon_o the_o law_n of_o it_o and_o the_o church_n must_v of_o necessity_n die_v and_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o want_v of_o right_a to_o execute_v and_o propagate_v the_o ministery_n which_o it_o stand_v incharged_a with_o by_o the_o scripture_n the_o canonist_n have_v do_v well_o to_o distinguish_v between_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o ministery_n of_o the_o church_n provide_v that_o the_o ground_n be_v right_o understand_v upon_o which_o these_o term_n be_v distinguishable_a according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o will_v point_v the_o effect_n of_o it_o to_o a_o far_a other_o purpose_n but_o we_o must_v not_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o canonist_n for_o it_o be_v indeed_o this_o because_o he_o that_o receive_v the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n in_o the_o church_n for_o example_n be_v not_o of_o necessity_n by_o the_o same_o act_n depute_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o all_o that_o his_o order_n import_v and_o enable_v to_o exercise_v without_o receive_v the_o order_n anew_o i_o say_v by_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v not_o confine_v when_o he_o receive_v the_o order_n when_o where_o how_o what_o part_n of_o those_o thing_n he_o shall_v exercise_v which_o the_o order_n enable_v to_o do_v true_a it_o be_v when_o the_o canon_n that_o prohibit_v ordination_n without_o title_n of_o office_n be_v in_o force_n to_o the_o true_a purpose_n of_o it_o by_o receive_v the_o order_n a_o man_n be_v depute_v to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o he_o receive_v it_o as_o a_o bishop_n be_v now_o when_o first_o he_o be_v ordain_v and_o the_o near_a the_o course_n of_o law_n come_v to_o this_o canon_n the_o better_a i_o conceive_v it_o be_v in_o that_o regard_n but_o as_o this_o deputation_n be_v alterable_a so_o be_v the_o execution_n of_o it_o of_o necessity_n limitable_a in_o they_o that_o receive_v it_o what_o law_n of_o god_n what_o command_v of_o scripture_n what_o rule_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v there_o to_o hinder_v he_o that_o be_v depute_v to_o one_o service_n to_o undertake_v another_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o enable_v all_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n for_o example_n indifferent_o to_o exercise_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o of_o ordain_v so_o far_o as_o it_o belong_v to_o that_o order_n of_o right_a much_o less_o to_o exercise_v it_o according_a to_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o not_o according_a to_o rule_n prescribe_v by_o the_o church_n therefore_o when_o the_o order_n be_v give_v if_o you_o please_v to_o call_v the_o right_n of_o exercise_v that_o which_o it_o import_v in_o such_o time_n and_o place_n and_o sort_n as_o he_o that_o receive_v it_o be_v or_o may_v be_v depute_v to_o do_v without_o receive_v the_o order_n anew_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n this_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n may_v be_v give_v or_o limit_v by_o other_o act_n beside_o though_o habitual_o and_o afar_o off_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o order_n of_o presbyter_n and_o exercise_v without_o receive_v the_o order_n anew_o so_o soon_o as_o a_o man_n be_v depute_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o if_o further_o the_o question_n be_v make_v from_o who_o this_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n that_o be_v the_o right_a of_o exercise_v that_o which_o the_o order_n thus_o enable_v to_o do_v be_v derive_v and_o in_o who_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n that_o be_v the_o right_a of_o give_v this_o right_n reside_v which_o the_o canonist_n derive_v from_o the_o pope_n upon_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o answer_n be_v plain_a that_o it_o must_v rest_v in_o they_o and_o be_v derive_v from_o they_o upon_o who_o the_o government_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o that_o which_o fall_v under_o they_o be_v estate_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o as_o much_o as_o no_o law_n of_o god_n enforce_v the_o rest_n of_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v by_o one_o further_o than_o the_o law_n of_o charity_n enforce_v all_o to_o concur_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a in_o the_o outward_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n in_o charitable_a cause_n settle_v here_o upon_o bishopric_n the_o matter_n be_v somewhat_o otherwise_o in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v not_o so_o settle_v by_o express_a provision_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o not_o so_o strange_a from_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o which_o be_v provide_v there_o but_o that_o it_o may_v seem_v original_o to_o have_v be_v derive_v from_o thence_o 1._o cor._n vi_fw-la the_o apostle_n reprove_v they_o for_o impleading_a one_o another_o in_o the_o court_n of_o unbeliever_n show_v that_o the_o church_n be_v disparage_v in_o that_o course_n as_o if_o it_o have_v none_o fit_a to_o decide_v their_o controversy_n whereas_o it_o have_v be_v better_a to_o refer_v their_o cause_n to_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o church_n then_o to_o sue_v before_o infidel_n that_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o his_o word_n there_o vers_n 4._o if_o you_o have_v cause_n concern_v matter_n of_o this_o life_n set_v they_o to_o judge_v who_o be_v least_o esteem_v in_o the_o church_n not_o speak_v by_o way_n of_o precept_n command_v they_o to_o let_v the_o simple_a of_o the_o brethren_n judge_v their_o cause_n that_o be_v a_o strange_a course_n where_o there_o be_v able_a man_n to_o do_v it_o but_o by_o way_n of_o concession_n that_o it_o be_v better_a so_o to_o do_v then_o as_o they_o do_v do_v for_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n argue_v that_o the_o custom_n grow_v upon_o this_o order_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o refer_v their_o cause_n to_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n two_o 47._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v your_o consistory_n be_v upon_o the_o mundaye_n that_o if_o there_o arise_v opposition_n to_o your_o sentence_n have_v leisure_n till_o the_o sabbath_n you_o may_v set_v the_o opposition_n straight_o and_o make_v they_o friend_n that_o be_v at_o variance_n among_o themselves_o against_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o the_o deacon_n also_o an●_n presbyter_n be_v present_a at_o the_o consistory_n judge_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n as_o man_n of_o god_n c._n 45._o afore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o suffer_v not_o the_o magistrate_n of_o the_o world_n to_o give_v sentence_n on_o we_o not_o withdraw_v obedience_n
he_o shall_v be_v much_o mistake_v that_o shall_v so_o understand_v it_o but_o take_v up_o controversy_n within_o the_o church_n after_o ●his_fw-la course_n and_o all_o to_o this_o purpose_n that_o on_o ●he_n lord_n day_n they_o may_v communicate_v ●hat_n they_o may_v give_v and_o receive_v the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n that_o when_o the_o deacon_n pronounce_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v no_o man_n ●ave_n a_o quarrel_n or_o suspicion_n against_o any_o they_o may_v nevertheless_o draw_v near_o such_o be_v ●he_n beginning_n of_o the_o external_a jurisdiction_n of_o ●he_n church_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v judge_v whether_o it_o be_v first_o bestow_v by_o the_o indulgence_n of_o christian_a prince_n or_o by_o they_o continue_v upon_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be●ore_o the_o empire_n be_v christian_n but_o of_o this_o we_o speak_v not_o here_o as_o not_o concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n in_o spiritual_a ●atters_n wherein_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n we_o communicate_v that_o stand_v indeed_o and_o ●ometh_v to_o effect_v by_o the_o free_a consent_n of_o member_n of_o it_o so_o far_o as_o religion_n be_v not_o the_o law_n of_o that_o kingdom_n or_o commonwealth_n ●_o which_o it_o flourish_v because_o our_o lord_n ●●dued_v not_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o kingdom_n with_o that_o power_n to_o constrain_v obedience_n ●hich_v himself_o use_v not_o upon_o earth_n but_o as_o ●he_v law_n of_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealths_a enforce_v the_o execution_n and_o outward_a ●ffect_n of_o ministery_n institute_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o this_o respect_n not_o the_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v alone_o but_o of_o preach_v and_o minister_a the_o sacrament_n and_o whatsoever_o else_o belong_v to_o the_o office_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o commonwealth_n that_o be_v in_o our_o particular_a from_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n because_o it_o be_v exercise_v with_o effect_n outward_o that_o be_v of_o do_v the_o work_n though_o not_o of_o produce_v the_o inward_a end_n and_o purpose_n of_o convert_v the_o soul_n by_o law_n enforce_v by_o it_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o all_o tha●_n be_v do_v in_o depute_v those_o that_o receive_v any_o order_n in_o the_o church_n to_o the_o exercise_n of_o any_o part_n of_o that_o function_n which_o the_o order_n receive_v import_v the_o right_a and_o charge_n o●_n it_o must_v rest_v upon_o those_o ministery_n that_o an●_n incharged_a with_o the_o oversight_n and_o government_n of_o such_o matter_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o who_o it_o must_v be_v exercise_v be_v the_o commonwealth_n not_o christian●_n but_o the_o power_n that_o enforce_v the_o effect_n o●_n that_o which_o they_o do_v in_o this_o and_o all_o part_n o●_n their_o office_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o secular_a arm_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n that_o cherish_v th●_n church_n in_o the_o bosom_n of_o it_o as_o for_o excommunication_n by_o judges_n delegate_n or_o high-commissioner_n that_o be_v by_o man_n not_o of_o these_o order_n first_o it_o proceed_v upon_o rule_n direct_v by_o the_o church_n and_o then_o the_o course_n o●_n it_o be_v not_o so_o agreeable_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o scripture_n as_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n for_o that_o be_v here_o to_o be_v aver_v again_o that_o th●_n presbytery_n whereof_o we_o speak_v be_v difference_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n as_o bench_n compose_v of_o none_o but_o person_n ordain_v by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n for_o the_o purpose_n of_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o order_v and_o govern_v spiritual_a matter_n so_o you_o have_v the_o office_n describe_v in_o all_o place_n where_o there_o be_v remembrance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o scripture_n only_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n v._o 17._o let_v the_o elder_n that_o rule_v well_o be_v count_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n especial_o those_o that_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n it_o be_v imagine_v that_o two_o kind_n of_o presbyter_n as_o well_o as_o two_o part_n of_o their_o office_n be_v express_v one_o of_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n another_o of_o the_o people_n one_o perpetual_a the_o other_o ambulatory_a for_o their_o time_n both_o alike_o interest_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o office_n of_o preach_v charge_v upon_o the_o one_o how_o little_a of_o this_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o sense_n of_o they_o that_o which_o be_v pretend_v let_v all_o the_o world_n judge_n yet_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o that_o discipline_n which_o have_v be_v press_v as_o one_o of_o the_o essential_a mark_n of_o avisible_a church_n but_o the_o purpose_n be_v now_o to_o satisfy_v that_o which_o have_v be_v allege_v from_o the_o collection_n of_o justellus_n upon_o the_o african_a canon_n to_o make_v good_a this_o pretend_a meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o from_o the_o apostle_n own_o word_n he_o have_v there_o produce_v out_o of_o church-writer_n of_o the_o age_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o optatus_n or_o underneath_o much_o remembrance_n of_o certain_a person_n style_v in_o those_o writer_n seniores_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la elder_n of_o church_n as_o in_o s._n augustine_n count_v cresc_n iii._o 56._o clerici_fw-la &_o seniores_fw-la cirthensium_fw-la epist_n 136._o peregrinus_n presbyter_n &_o seniores_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la musticanae_fw-la regionis_fw-la in_o ep._n conc._n cabarsussitani_n apud_fw-la s._n aug._n in_o psal_n 36._o seniores_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la carthaginensis_n and_o to_o these_o person_n be_v ascribe_v certain_a act_n retain_v at_o least_o to_o the_o government_n of_o those_o church_n as_o the_o church_n good_n be_v deposit_v in_o their_o hand_n optatus_n lib._n i._n they_o reprove_v a_o drunkard_n august_n serm._n nineteeen_o de_fw-fr verbis_fw-la domini_fw-la they_o be_v present_a at_o a_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n greg._n l._n xi_o ep._n 19_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n at_o carthage_n solicit_v the_o sentence_n of_o their_o bishop_n cause_n epist_n council_n cabarsussitani_n apud_fw-la august_n in_o psal_n 36._o these_o and_o more_o particular_n produce_v by_o justellus_n out_o of_o origen_n iiii_o count_v celsum_fw-la that_o the_o church_n have_v certain_a of_o the_o people_n to_o inform_v they_o of_o scandalous_a offence_n whereupon_o they_o may_v proceed_v to_o reproof_n or_o censure_n but_o observe_v first_o the_o style_n of_o the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1._o tim._n 5._o 17._o and_o heb._n xiii_o 17._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d agree_v with_o that_o of_o tertullian_n apolog._n cap._n 39_o president_n probati_fw-la quique_fw-la seniores_fw-la and_o of_o firmilianus_n ep._n lxxv_o cypr._n in_o qua_fw-la president_n majores_fw-la natu_fw-la and_o ignatius_n afore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o express_v the_o first_o rank_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o after_o the_o bishop_n they_o put_v the_o presbyter_n compare_v herewith_o the_o rank_n in_o which_o we_o see_v these_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o time_n of_o optatus_n and_o s._n augustine_n place_v in_o these_o writing_n from_o whence_o the_o remembrance_n of_o they_o be_v allege_v in_o act_v purgat_fw-la caecil_n &_o felicis_n episcopi_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la diaconi_fw-la seniores_fw-la august_n three_o cont_n cresc_n 56._o clerici_fw-la &_o seniores_fw-la cirthensium_fw-la and_o then_o let_v common_a sense_n judge_n whether_o these_o that_o stand_v in_o rank_n and_o style_n behind_o all_o degree_n of_o the_o clergy_n be_v the_o man_n that_o the_o apostle_n place_v in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o ruler_n of_o it_o or_o how_o those_o that_o govern_v the_o church_n can_v come_v behind_o deacon_n and_o inferior_a rank_n who_o they_o govern_v the_o truth_n be_v in_o that_o age_n when_o the_o latin_a tongue_n begin_v to_o decay_v and_o corrupt_v they_o be_v call_v seniores_fw-la in_o the_o author_n allege_v by_o justellus_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o now_o in_o the_o vulgar_a language_n into_o which_o the_o latin_a be_v change_v signori_fw-it or_o scigneurs_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v remembrance_n of_o seniores_fw-la locorum_fw-la &_o seniores_fw-la regni_fw-la childeberti_fw-la out_o of_o gregory_n of_o tours_n as_o well_o as_o seniores_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la signify_v the_o alderman_n of_o commonalty_n and_o lord_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o well_o as_o the_o chief_a person_n of_o such_o or_o such_o a_o people_n that_o acknowledge_v the_o christian_a faith_n at_o such_o time_n as_o all_o be_v not_o christian_n but_o church_n and_o commonalty_n in_o which_o they_o subsist_v make_v body_n distinct_a in_o person_n as_o well_o as_o in_o night_n in_o that_o regard_n it_o seem_v they_o be_v call_v sometime_o viri_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la ecclesiastical_a person_n that_o be_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n because_o there_o be_v other_o of_o like_a rank_n which_o be_v heathen_a belong_v not_o to_o it_o rather_o than_o for_o any_o settle_a charge_n in_o these_o
that_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o general_a to_o affirm_v that_o no_o man_n can_v call_v jesus_n lord_z but_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o relate_v to_o the_o particular_a whereof_o he_o speak_v to_o tell_v we_o that_o such_o as_o pretend_v to_o speak_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o glorify_v our_o lord_n christ_n then_o be_v they_o what_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v otherwise_o not_o as_o who_o shall_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o they_o to_o persist_v in_o their_o counterfeit_n when_o it_o be_v require_v of_o they_o to_o confess_v christ_n for_o we_o know_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n at_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n unclean_a spirit_n forsake_v the_o possess_v and_o thus_o s._n chrysostome_n answer_v that_o she_o which_o have_v the_o unclean_a spirit_n act_n xuj_o 16._o confess_v christ_n indeed_o but_o unwilling_o and_o so_o as_o she_o be_v discover_v by_o it_o for_o be_v a_o thing_n evident_a that_o man_n do_v and_o may_v counterfeit_v themselves_o christian_n and_o call_v jesus_n lord_n with_o a_o tongue_n rather_o move_v by_o the_o evil_a spirit_n it_o seem_v a_o inconvenience_n to_o grant_v that_o all_o man_n in_o confess_v christ_n speak_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o they_o confess_v but_o it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o conceive_v that_o god_n suffer_v not_o those_o that_o pretend_v to_o spiritual_a grace_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n propound_v there_o to_o speak_v in_o particular_a be_v move_v indeed_o by_o the_o evil_a spirit_n this_o sense_n i_o embrace_v because_o the_o same_o mark_n be_v lay_v down_o so_o plain_o by_o another_o apostle_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 1._o john_n iiii_o 1._o belove_a believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n because_o many_o false-prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n hereby_o know_v you_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v of_o god_n and_o every_o spirit_n that_o confess_v not_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v not_o of_o god_n spirit_n the_o apostle_n here_o call_v inspiration_n as_o in_o s._n paul_n 1._o cor._n twelve_o 10._o discern_v of_o spirit_n that_o be_v inspiration_n and_o 1_o cor._n fourteen_o 12._o because_o you_o be_v zealous_a of_o spirit_n that_o be_v of_o spiritual_a grace_n and_o the_o difference_n between_o his_o mark_n to_o try_v they_o by_o and_z s._n paul_n be_v but_o this_o according_a to_o the_o one_o he_o that_o acknowledge_v jesus_n the_o messiah_n to_o be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n according_a to_o the_o other_o he_o that_o acknowledge_v jesus_n that_o be_v come_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n he_o it_o be_v that_o speak_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o thess_n v._o 19_o 20._o according_a to_o the_o same_o s._n chrysostome_n where_o have_v say_v quench_v not_o the_o spirit_n despise_v not_o prophesy_v he_o add_v immediate_o try_v all_o thing_n hold_v fast_o that_o which_o be_v good_a instruct_v they_o in_o the_o particular_a in_o hand_n to_o examine_v all_o that_o pretend_v to_o these_o spiritual_a grace_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o discern_a spirit_n which_o god_n then_o allow_v the_o church_n for_o that_o purpose_n and_o to_o make_v use_n of_o such_o as_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o profess_v the_o proposition_n of_o this_o discourse_n of_o the_o apostle_n then_o concern_v those_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o consist_v in_o speak_v whereof_o therefore_o there_o may_v be_v use_n in_o public_a assembly_n which_o his_o purpose_n be_v to_o order_v by_o such_o rule_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o propound_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o fourteen_o chapter_n of_o this_o epistle_n but_o this_o to_o do_v he_o fetch_v a_o compass_n about_o and_o lanch_v into_o a_o general_a discourse_n of_o all_o manner_n of_o grace_n all_o manner_n of_o ministery_n all_o manner_n of_o work_n that_o have_v relation_n to_o the_o public_a body_n of_o the_o church_n to_o show_v that_o all_o be_v give_v and_o intend_v not_o for_o the_o eminence_n of_o those_o person_n on_o who_o they_o be_v bestow_v but_o for_o the_o public_a benefit_n this_o be_v the_o point_n to_o which_o he_o proceed_v vers_fw-la 4._o now_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o there_o be_v difference_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o it_o be_v the_o same_o god_n that_o work_v all_o in_o all_o but_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o it_o concern_v not_o the_o purpose_n of_o my_o discourse_n here_o to_o be_v nice_a in_o inquire_v the_o difference_n between_o grace_n and_o ministery_n and_o operation_n remember_v here_o by_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o observe_v that_o the_o name_n of_o ministery_n be_v sometime_o particular_a for_o those_o that_o be_v call_v deacon_n from_o the_o original_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o they_o minister_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n for_o discharge_v of_o their_o office_n sometime_o general_a for_o all_o kind_n of_o service_n in_o regard_n of_o he_o to_o who_o it_o address_v for_o as_o concern_v the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v here_o there_o be_v difference_n of_o ministery_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n so_o general_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o service_n to_o any_o person_n that_o person_n be_v the_o lord_n and_o those_o service_n in_o his_o regard_n be_v ministery_n indeed_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v in_o the_o next_o word_n the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_v withal_o manifest_o proceed_v to_o speak_v of_o none_o but_o miraculous_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n demonstrate_v the_o presence_n thereof_o in_o the_o church_n though_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v general_a in_o its_o own_o nature_n signify_v all_o manner_n of_o gift_n proceed_v from_o favour_n and_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v translate_v in_o the_o syriack_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v gift_n whereas_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d operation_n seem_v particular_o to_o relate_v to_o such_o grace_n as_o tend_v to_o miraculous_a work_n and_o be_v therefore_o render_v in_o the_o syriack_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v powerful_a operation_n thus_o it_o be_v true_a which_o s._n chrysostome_n write_v upon_o this_o chapter_n in_o the_o beginning_n because_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v from_o idol_n know_v not_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v invisible_a god_n give_v in_o these_o grace_n a_o sensible_a evidence_n of_o the_o operation_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o this_o say_v he_o manifest_v to_o those_o that_o be_v without_o the_o church_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v in_o he_o that_o speak_v therefore_o so_o he_o call_v it_o say_v but_o to_o every_o one_o be_v give_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o profit_n with_o call_v gift_n the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o oecumenius_n according_a to_o he_o though_o this_o be_v true_a yet_o the_o process_n of_o the_o apostle_n discourse_n from_o vers_fw-la 12._o intend_v not_o only_o to_o comprise_v miraculous_a grace_n but_o all_o ministery_n ordain_v for_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o depend_v on_o miraculous_a grace_n or_o not_o as_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o reason_n whereupon_o he_o proceed_v and_o by_o the_o catalogue_n wherein_o from_z vers_n 8._o he_o recapitulate_v and_o reckon_v the_o particular_n of_o all_o that_o can_v be_v reduce_v under_o those_o head_n of_o grace_n of_o ministery_n of_o operation_n for_o the_o reason_n wherewith_o the_o apostle_n pursue_v this_o point_n propose_v that_o all_o these_o be_v intend_v not_o to_o make_v the_o person_n eminent_a in_o who_o they_o be_v but_o for_o public_a benefit_n be_v the_o comparison_n of_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o the_o member_n of_o it_o whereof_o there_o be_v none_o that_o envy_v or_o despise_v another_o to_o teach_v private_a person_n not_o to_o grudge_v at_o they_o upon_o who_o public_a grace_n or_o place_n be_v bestow_v and_o they_o not_o to_o despise_v private_a person_n this_o comparison_n the_o apostle_n set_v on_o foot_n also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n but_o slight_v it_o over_o more_o in_o brief_a there_o because_o as_o s._n chrysostome_n think_v it_o seem_v the_o abuse_n against_o which_o he_o write_v as_o it_o be_v also_o there_o so_o be_v it_o more_o rife_a among_o the_o corinthian_n this_o reason_n it_o be_v plain_a concern_v those_o that_o
have_v public_a ministery_n no_o less_o than_o those_o that_o have_v miraculous_a grace_n both_o be_v for_o the_o common_a benefit_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v enlarge_v this_o comparison_n to_o the_o full_a in_o this_o place_n to_o show_v to_o who_o he_o speak_v as_o member_n of_o public_a place_n proceed_v vers_fw-la 28._o to_o particularize_v all_o to_o who_o his_o exhortation_n belong_v apostle_n prophet_n and_o the_o rest_n among_o who_o he_o reckon_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v help_n and_o government_n which_o our_o english_a render_v help_n in_o government_n which_o whether_o they_o mean_v miraculous_a grace_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o ministery_n of_o public_a service_n in_o the_o church_n i_o refer_v to_o further_a consideration_n afterward_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n for_o the_o same_o purpose_n have_v reckon_v more_o particular_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n not_o necessary_o proceed_v from_o miraculous_a grace_n though_o his_o discourse_n there_o twelve_o 6._o comprise_v those_o also_o when_o he_o say_v have_v several_a gift_n according_a to_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v to_o we_o for_o the_o present_a we_o may_v see_v what_o this_o whole_a discourse_n of_o the_o apostle_n aim_v at_o by_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o chapter_n where_o he_o say_v covet_v earnest_o the_o best_a gift_n and_o yet_o show_v i_o unto_o you_o a_o more_o excellent_a way_n for_o this_o exhortation_n it_o be_v that_o ty_v all_o that_o have_v pass_v with_o that_o which_o follow_v the_o syriack_n read_v it_o thus_o if_o you_o be_v zealous_a of_o the_o best_a grace_n i_o will_v yet_o show_v you_o a_o more_o excellent_a way_n theodoret_n and_o oecumenius_n make_v a_o question_n of_o it_o thus_o be_v you_o zealous_a of_o the_o most_o eminent_a grace_n i_o will_v yet_o show_v you_o a_o way_n beyond_o they_o all_o but_o whether_o the_o meaning_n be_v to_o exhort_v they_o to_o pursue_v the_o most_o useful_a grace_n or_o to_o suppose_v that_o they_o do_v it_o thus_o much_o for_o certain_a his_o intent_n be_v to_o give_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o all_o member_n of_o public_a service_n in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o seek_v the_o eminence_n of_o their_o person_n but_o the_o common_a benefit_n because_o there_o be_v a_o thing_n call_v the_o common_a charity_n of_o christian_n more_o available_a towards_o the_o esteem_n of_o all_o man_n person_n be_v they_o never_o so_o private_a in_o the_o church_n with_o god_n than_o all_o those_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o appear_v so_o marvellous_a to_o common_a sense_n this_o be_v the_o occasion_n of_o that_o comparison_n which_o follow_v throughout_o the_o thirteen_o chapter_n between_o the_o common_a charity_n of_o christian_n and_o their_o particular_a miraculous_a grace_n which_o be_v dispatch_v there_o in_o good_a time_n do_v the_o apostle_n proceed_v to_o resume_v that_o which_o he_o have_v propose_v afore_o and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n intermit_v concern_v zeal_n and_o study_n for_o the_o most_o excellent_a grace_n which_o he_o ty_v up_o with_o that_o charity_n which_o hitherto_o he_o have_v prefer_v to_o they_o all_o in_o that_o proposition_n which_o he_o open_v the_o fourteen_o chapter_n with_o follow_v after_o charity_n and_o desire_n spiritual_a gift_n but_o rather_o that_o you_o may_v prophesy_v for_o when_o he_o prefer_v prophesy_v before_o other_o spiritual_a gift_n it_o be_v plain_a enough_o what_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v before_o be_v zealous_a of_o the_o best_a grace_n a_o thing_n in_o which_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n because_o it_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o what_o be_v behind_o in_o this_o discourse_n now_o let_v i_o lay_v down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherein_o he_o reckon_v in_o particular_a the_o grace_n and_o ministery_n of_o the_o church_n 1._o cor._n twelve_o 28._o and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o the_o church_n first_o apostle_n secondary_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n after_o that_o miracle_n than_o gift_n of_o healing_n help_v in_o government_n diversity_n of_o tongue_n whereunto_o we_o may_v add_v out_o of_o vers_n 29._o interpret_n of_o tongue_n and_o herewith_o compare_v the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o same_o which_o he_o comprise_v under_o the_o name_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n rom._n twelve_o 6_o 7_o 8._o have_v then_o gifis_n differ_v according_a to_o the_o grace_n that_o be_v give_v to_o we_o whether_o prophecy_n let_v we_o prophesy_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n or_o ministry_n let_v we_o wait_v on_o our_o minister_a or_o he_o that_o teach_v on_o teach_v or_o he_o that_o exhort_v on_o exhortation_n he_o that_o give_v let_v he_o do_v it_o with_o simplicity_n he_o that_o rule_v with_o diligence_n he_o that_o show_v mercy_n with_o chearfulnesse_n that_o which_o follow_v concern_v the_o particular_a virtue_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o work_n of_o they_o as_o love_n hope_v patience_n and_o the_o like_a such_o as_o be_v also_o those_o that_o go_v afore_o of_o give_v and_o show_v mercy_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v rank_v among_o those_o grace_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o general_a good_a of_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v because_o they_o also_o respect_v the_o benefit_n of_o other_o last_o of_o all_o add_v unto_o these_o the_o ministery_n which_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n upon_o his_o asscension_n pour_v out_o upon_o the_o church_n appoint_v according_a to_o the_o same_o apostle_n ephes_n iiii_o 11_o 12._o and_o he_o give_v some_o apostle_n and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o evangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o perfect_a of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o word_n as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o particular_n which_o he_o put_v down_o and_o which_o he_o leave_v out_o of_o those_o which_o he_o reckon_v in_o the_o other_o place_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o intend_v according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o speech_n there_o to_o comprise_v none_o but_o those_o grace_n and_o ministery_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n but_o write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n his_o intent_n be_v to_o set_v down_o all_o manner_n of_o grace_n and_o ministery_n tend_v to_o the_o common_a benefit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n either_o in_o spiritual_a or_o corporal_a necessity_n in_o work_a miracle_n and_o the_o like_a none_o whereof_o he_o mention_v to_o the_o roman_n neither_o the_o grace_n of_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n it_o seem_v because_o they_o be_v grace_n and_o office_n not_o confine_v to_o one_o church_n in_o particular_a these_o catalogue_n be_v here_o compare_v for_o the_o ease_n and_o direction_n of_o they_o that_o desire_v to_o judge_v of_o such_o particular_n as_o seem_v not_o yet_o out_o of_o doubt_n in_o the_o ministery_n appoint_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o which_o purpose_n we_o must_v resume_v what_o have_v be_v elsewhere_o observe_v that_o nothing_o hinder_v divers_a of_o the_o grace_n specify_v to_o meet_v in_o the_o same_o person_n for_o though_o we_o suppose_v as_o the_o apostle_n seem_v to_o suppose_v all_o ministery_n to_o be_v accompany_v with_o the_o grace_n which_o the_o discharge_n of_o they_o require_v as_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n num._n xi_o 25._o receive_v part_n of_o moses_n his_o spirit_n and_o though_o all_o grace_n infer_v ministery_n as_o he_o that_o be_v endue_v with_o any_o of_o the_o grace_n specify_v to_o the_o corinthian_n minister_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o grace_n to_o the_o benefit_n of_o other_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o ministery_n of_o public_a office_n in_o the_o church_n whether_o to_o cease_v or_o continue_v and_o grace_n which_o enable_v either_o a_o public_a person_n to_o a_o public_a or_o private_a person_n to_o a_o particular_a work_n as_o that_o of_o miracle_n several_a ministery_n of_o public_a place_n in_o the_o church_n must_v belong_v to_o several_a person_n but_o public_a person_n be_v capable_a as_o well_o of_o the_o grace_n which_o private_a person_n have_v as_o of_o those_o that_o belong_v to_o their_o public_a charge_n include_v perhaps_o the_o grace_n of_o inferior_a ministery_n and_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o first_o in_o the_o catalogue_n shall_v put_v this_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o be_v of_o apostle_n for_o nothing_o hinder_v a_o apostle_n to_o be_v a_o prophet_n to_o speak_v strange_a language_n to_o work_v miracle_n or_o the_o like_a the_o commentary_n under_o s._n ambrose_n his_o name_n quamvis_fw-la sint_fw-la &_o apostoli_fw-la prophetae_fw-la quia_fw-la primus_fw-la gradus_fw-la reliquos_fw-la subjectos_fw-la habet_fw-la though_o say_v he_o apostle_n also_o be_v prophet_n because_o the_o chief_a degree_n have_v the_o
rest_n subject_n to_o it_o his_o meaning_n be_v the_o grace_n of_o apostles_n contain_v the_o grace_n of_o inferior_a minister_n as_o their_o ministery_n be_v subject_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n be_v no_o apostle_n but_o their_o minister_n in_o use_v their_o grace_n to_o second_v the_o apostle_n therefore_o the_o grace_n of_o apostles_n contain_v that_o of_o evangelist_n prophet_n be_v no_o apostle_n to_o preach_v the_o faith_n and_o plant_v church_n but_o for_o the_o instruction_n of_o church_n plant_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o a_o prophet_n to_o all_o purpose_n may_v be_v in_o a_o apostle_n doctor_n be_v no_o apostle_n but_o apostle_n chief_a of_o doctor_n elder_n of_o church_n can_v not_o be_v apostle_n they_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n ordain_v for_o the_o service_n of_o several_a church_n but_o the_o apostle_n make_v themselves_o their_o fellow_n elder_n in_o regard_n to_o the_o government_n of_o all_o church_n of_o their_o charge_n if_o presbyter_n much_o more_o bishop_n which_o as_o head_n of_o presbyter_n be_v that_o in_o one_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o all_o of_o their_o own_o plant_n and_o charge_n those_o companion_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o of_o you_o have_v hear_v be_v some_o of_o they_o call_v in_o express_a term_n evangelist_n and_o the_o office_n may_v well_o be_v think_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o rest_n titus_n clemens_n linus_n erastus_n and_o other_o may_v upon_o good_a presumption_n be_v call_v evangelist_n as_o those_o be_v to_o who_o their_o condition_n be_v so_o answerable_a mark_v luke_n timothy_n that_o be_v so_o call_v in_o scripture_n or_o so_o repute_v in_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n my_o conjecture_n be_v that_o they_o be_v send_v by_o their_o several_a church_n as_o timothy_n from_o that_o of_o lystra_n act_v xuj_o 3._o as_o deacon_n to_o minister_v unto_o the_o apostle_n head_n of_o those_o church_n for_o the_o time_n that_o they_o continue_v in_o their_o attendance_n and_o by_o they_o employ_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o their_o appointment_n in_o such_o place_n where_o themselves_o can_v not_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o grace_n give_v they_o to_o do_v it_o as_o philip_n deacon_n to_o the_o apostle_n first_o and_o afterward_o to_o s._n james_n be_v also_o a_o evangelist_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o samaria_n act_v viij_o 5._o xxi_o 8._o and_o i_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o repent_v of_o this_o conjecture_n read_v thus_o act_v nineteeen_o 22._o so_o he_o send_v before_o two_o of_o those_o that_o minister_v unto_o he_o timotheus_n and_o erastus_n it_o be_v the_o word_n from_o whence_o deacon_n have_v their_o name_n but_o when_o they_o receive_v the_o charge_n of_o church_n though_o bishop_n of_o those_o church_n yet_o cease_v they_o not_o to_o be_v evangelist_n for_o the_o charge_n of_o propagate_a the_o gospel_n through_o the_o country_n seat_v underneath_o the_o city_n of_o those_o church_n thus_o be_v mark_n at_o alexandria_n timothy_n at_o ephesus_n titus_n at_o gortyna_n in_o crete_n the_o rest_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o walo_n messalinus_n p._n cxcii_o he_o suppose_v that_o these_o companion_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v themselves_o also_o call_v apostle_n of_o a_o second_o rank_n as_o send_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n at_o their_o dispose_n as_o the_o apostle_n be_v by_o christ_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n every_o where_n without_o restraint_n and_o there_o be_v appearance_n of_o this_o sense_n 2._o pet._n iii._o 2._o apoc._n two_o 2._o not_o in_o phil._n two_o 25._o 2._o cor._n viij_o 23._o where_o epaphroditus_n and_o other_o be_v call_v apostle_n of_o church_n in_o a_o three_o sense_n declare_v elsewhere_o answerable_a to_o those_o apostle_n of_o the_o synagogue_n mention_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o emperor_n that_o be_v send_v through_o the_o synagogue_n to_o gather_v the_o due_n of_o their_o patriarch_n reside_v in_o palestine_n and_o theodoret_n conceive_v that_o when_o all_o presbyter_n be_v call_v bishop_n than_o bishop_n be_v call_v apostle_n in_o this_o sense_n but_o we_o must_v not_o understand_v those_o to_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o who_o this_o place_n speak_v but_o the_o first_o apostle_n of_o christ_n for_o those_o that_o be_v thus_o call_v apostle_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v call_v evangelist_n here_o and_o ephes_n iiii_o 12._o thus_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o grace_n and_o ministery_n but_o as_o concern_v the_o office_n of_o doctor_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n it_o may_v be_v two_o way_n understand_v the_o disciple_n of_o prophet_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n such_o as_o attain_v not_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o immediate_a inspiration_n but_o rest_v in_o that_o knowledge_n which_o the_o ordinary_a blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o their_o study_n be_v able_a to_o compass_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v call_v prophet_n in_o the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n be_v sometime_o translate_v scribe_n sometime_o doctor_n as_o have_v be_v say_v some_o man_n may_v conceive_v the_o like_a of_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o their_o disciple_n that_o have_v no_o immediate_a inspiration_n be_v admit_v to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n which_o after_o this_o rank_n of_o prophet_n be_v cease_v come_v also_o to_o nothing_o but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o such_o in_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o doubt_v that_o the_o man_n who_o the_o apostle_n here_o call_v doctor_n be_v those_o of_o the_o presbyter_n which_o have_v the_o ability_n of_o preach_v and_o teach_v the_o people_n at_o their_o assembly_n that_o those_o of_o the_o presbyter_n that_o preach_v not_o be_v call_v here_o by_o the_o apostle_n government_n and_o the_o deacon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v help_n or_o assistant_n to_o the_o government_n of_o presbyter_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v help_n in_o government_n but_o help_v government_n for_o we_o be_v not_o here_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o apostle_n reckon_v one_o by_o one_o the_o list_n of_o all_o grace_n and_o ministery_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v say_v never_o a_o word_n of_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n the_o only_a ministery_n of_o succession_n in_o the_o church_n under_o bishop_n now_o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n though_o set_v up_o at_o the_o first_o upon_o occasion_n of_o minister_a the_o oblation_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o poor_a yet_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o practice_n of_o it_o in_o the_o time_n next_o the_o apostle_n can_v be_v better_a express_v then_o call_v they_o assistant_n to_o the_o office_n of_o government_n rest_v in_o the_o presbyter_n when_o there_o be_v no_o bishop_n at_o corinth_n and_o we_o have_v here_o a_o particular_a reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o call_v they_o by_o the_o usual_a name_n of_o deacon_n in_o this_o place_n because_o he_o have_v use_v it_o before_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n when_o he_o say_v there_o be_v divers_a ministery_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o one_o lord_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o so_o well_o use_v it_o again_o here_o in_o this_o particular_a sense_n and_o the_o apostle_n intent_n here_o be_v to_o distinguish_v all_o grace_n in_o his_o catalogue_n and_o have_v show_v that_o there_o be_v two_o part_n of_o the_o presbyter_n office_n in_o teach_v and_o govern_v the_o one_o whereof_o some_o attain_v not_o even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o imagine_v that_o the_o office_n and_o ministry_n of_o presbyter_n be_v specify_v here_o in_o the_o name_n of_o these_o two_o grace_n in_o the_o exercise_n whereof_o it_o consist_v no_o otherwise_o then_o in_o the_o other_o place_n to_o the_o roman_n in_o these_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v design_v the_o same_o two_o grace_n in_o the_o work_n whereof_o consist_v the_o office_n of_o presbyter_n which_o he_o that_o acknowledge_v shall_v give_v reason_n enough_o why_o the_o apostle_n reckon_v the_o gift_n of_o exhortation_n there_o beside_o that_o of_o doctrine_n be_v no_o inconvenience_n to_o make_v several_a part_n of_o this_o grace_n tend_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o that_o which_o several_a man_n be_v most_o able_a to_o do_v though_o all_o may_v be_v comprise_v under_o one_o name_n of_o doctrine_n whereas_o those_o that_o upon_o the_o mention_n of_o teach_v imagine_v a_o several_a ministry_n of_o doctor_n institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n be_v tie_v in_o consequence_n to_o set_v up_o the_o like_a for_o exhortation_n which_o be_v ridiculous_a again_o hereby_o we_o give_v account_v what_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n understand_v by_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o wit_n those_o that_o exercise_v also_o that_o part_n of_o the_o presbyter_n office_n which_o
to_o be_v otherwise_o but_o to_o take_v notice_n what_o impression_n of_o this_o truth_n they_o receive_v from_o the_o place_n allege_v and_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o author_n to_o let_v pass_v other_o expound_v the_o apostle_n word_n rom._n twelve_o 3_o 6._o no_o otherwise_o according_a as_o god_n have_v deal_v to_o every_o man_n the_o measure_n of_o faith_n and_o whether_o prophesy_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o faith_n s._n ambrose_n haec_fw-la ergò_fw-la datur_fw-la pro_fw-la modo_fw-la accipientis_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la quantum_fw-la causa_fw-la exigit_fw-la propter_fw-la quam_fw-la datur_fw-la this_o therefore_o that_o be_v prophecy_n be_v give_v according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o he_o that_o receive_v that_o be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o cause_n require_v in_o respect_n whereof_o it_o be_v bestow_v and_o s._n chrysostome_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o though_o it_o be_v a_o grace_n it_o be_v not_o indifferent_o pour_v forth_o but_o take_v the_o measure_n from_o they_o which_o receive_v it_o flow_v upon_o they_o in_o measure_n as_o it_o find_v the_o vessel_n of_o faith_n offer_v understand_v that_o faith_n which_o move_v man_n to_o sue_v to_o god_n for_o such_o grace_n as_o he_o say_v pray_v that_o he_o may_v interpret_v and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o timothy_n 1._o tim._n four_o 13_o 14._o till_o i_o come_v give_v attendance_n to_o read_v to_o exhortation_n to_o doctrine_n neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n with_o the_o lay_n on_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o presbytery_n and_o 2._o tim._n 1._o 6._o wherefore_o i_o put_v thou_o in_o remembrance_n that_o thou_o stir_v up_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o by_o the_o put_n on_o of_o my_o hand_n for_o in_o call_v it_o a_o gift_n he_o signify_v a_o extraordinary_a grace_n of_o that_o time_n but_o in_o will_v he_o to_o stir_v it_o up_o and_o not_o to_o neglect_v it_o he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v in_o he_o to_o procure_v it_o at_o god_n hand_n by_o read_v and_o teach_v and_o pray_v and_o the_o like_a mean_n which_o he_o name_v or_o name_v not_o the_o true_a meaning_n then_o of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v vers_fw-la 14_o 15_o 16_o 17._o for_o if_o i_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n my_o spirit_n pray_v but_o my_o understanding_n be_v unfruitful_a what_o be_v it_o then_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o else_o when_o thou_o shall_v bless_v with_o the_o spirit_n how_o shall_v he_o that_o possess_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a say_n amen_o at_o thy_o give_v of_o thanks_o see_v he_o understand_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v for_o thou_o very_o give_v thanks_o well_o but_o the_o other_o be_v not_o edify_v i_o say_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o whole_a passage_n suppose_v that_o which_o we_o begin_v to_o prove_v of_o the_o prophet_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o it_o be_v part_n of_o their_o office_n to_o compose_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o their_o congregation_n for_o if_o we_o take_v not_o our_o mark_n amiss_o we_o shall_v see_v that_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o advantage_n upon_o these_o word_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n lie_v in_o this_o because_o the_o apostle_n argue_v express_o against_o they_o that_o to_o show_v their_o gift_n of_o language_n take_v upon_o they_o not_o only_o to_o utter_v the_o mystery_n of_o god_n in_o strange_a tongue_n but_o also_o in_o they_o to_o conceive_v prayer_n and_o psalm_n of_o god_n praise_n in_o the_o name_n and_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n this_o they_o be_v desirous_a to_o decline_v if_o the_o apostle_n will_v give_v leave_n for_o that_o which_o he_o say_v vers_fw-la 17._o another_z be_v not_o edify_v be_v as_o much_o as_o we_o find_v vers_fw-la v._o and_o vers_fw-la twelve_o that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v edify_v and_z vers_n nineteeen_o in_o the_o church_n i_o have_v rather_o speak_v five_o word_n to_o teach_v other_o and_o the_o apostle_n afterward_o vers_fw-la 16._o what_o be_v it_o then_o my_o brethren_n when_o you_o come_v together_o every_o one_o of_o you_o have_v a_o psalm_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n it_o will_v be_v very_o effectual_a to_o observe_v that_o as_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n saul_n and_o his_o servant_n be_v say_v to_o meet_v a_o whole_a choir_n of_o prophet_n prophesy_v and_o the_o son_n of_o asaph_n heman_n and_o jeduthun_n be_v say_v to_o prophesy_v in_o sing_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophet_n have_v indict_v so_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n it_o seem_v that_o sing_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v call_v prophesy_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o let_v i_o ask_v what_o the_o apostle_n mean_v when_o he_o say_v 1._o cor._n xi_o 5._o every_o woman_n pray_v or_o prophesy_v with_o her_o head_n uncover_v his_o speech_n concern_v christian_n assembly_n wherein_o he_o forbid_v a_o woman_n to_o speak_v 1._o cor._n xiiii_o 34_o be_v it_o that_o which_o the_o italian_a gloss_n of_o diodati_n after_o beza_n have_v expound_v it_o seem_v say_v he_o this_o word_n be_v to_o be_v take_v here_o not_o only_o for_o handle_v or_o expound_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o rom._n twelve_o 6._o but_o also_o for_o hear_v they_o mark_v they_o meditate_v upon_o they_o while_o they_o be_v propose_v of_o those_o that_o have_v the_o charge_n this_o can_v be_v allow_v pray_v be_v the_o party_n own_o act_n why_o not_o prophesy_v that_o stand_v in_o rank_n with_o it_o the_o commentary_n under_o s._n ambrose_n his_o name_n prophetari_fw-la autem_fw-la est_fw-la adventum_fw-la fore_fw-la domini_fw-la voce_fw-la symboli_fw-la post_fw-la orationem_fw-la effari_fw-la to_o prophecy_n be_v to_o pronounce_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o the_o lord_n shall_v come_v the_o creed_n be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o whole_a congregation_n this_o he_o think_v be_v call_v prophesy_v because_o it_o speak_v of_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n which_o shall_v be_v i_o bring_v not_o this_o because_o i_o allow_v it_o for_o it_o be_v somewhat_o strange_a to_o make_v all_o people_n prophet_n that_o say_v their_o creed_n because_o one_o article_n of_o it_o speak_v of_o thing_n to_o come_v beside_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o creed_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n any_o part_n of_o the_o church-service_n but_o because_o he_o see_v the_o true_a point_n of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o hear_v prophecy_n be_v no_o prophesy_v but_o it_o must_v be_v something_o that_o the_o congregation_n utter_v as_o well_o as_o in_o pray_v which_o the_o apostle_n call_v prophesy_v and_o what_o do_v the_o whole_a congregation_n send_v forth_o but_o prayer_n and_o psalm_n in_o both_o these_o as_o near_o as_o can_v be_v the_o people_n bear_v their_o part_n the_o whole_a pack_n of_o prophet_n prophesy_v together_o when_o saul_n and_o his_o servant_n and_o his_o messenger_n come_v because_o they_o all_o join_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n samuel_n guide_v the_o choir_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n come_v on_o they_o they_o utter_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n suggest_v the_o rest_n bear_v part_n in_o their_o sense_n isidore_n pelusiota_n lib._n two_o epist_n 90._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o teacher_n of_o our_o order_n desirous_a to_o suppress_v idle_a talk_n in_o church_n understand_o permit_v woman_n to_o sing_v in_o they_o i_o know_v there_o be_v other_o text_n of_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o speak_v in_o general_a to_o all_o person_n to_o sing_v psalm_n ephes_n v._o 18_o 19_o be_v fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n speak_v to_o yourselves_o in_o psalm_n &_o hymn_n &_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v &_o make_v melody_n in_o your_o heart_n unto_o god_n and_o coloss_n iii._o 6._o teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o in_o psalm_n &_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v with_o grace_n in_o pure_a heart_n unto_o god_n yet_o with_o good_a right_n be_v these_o word_n refer_v to_o no_o place_n but_o this_o because_o express_v mention_n of_o woman_n sing_v in_o assembly_n we_o find_v none_o but_o here_o if_o any_o man_n think_v that_o isidore_n in_o those_o word_n reflect_v not_o upon_o any_o thing_n deliver_v in_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o of_o the_o custom_n which_o the_o church_n receive_v at_o their_o hand_n it_o must_v needs_o nevertheless_o seem_v the_o most_o probable_a sense_n of_o s._n paul_n word_n which_o make_v they_o agree_v with_o that_o custom_n which_o he_o say_v the_o church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr virg._n
injunction_n be_v cease_v if_o then_o such_o ordinance_n and_o custom_n as_o be_v allow_v and_o enjoin_v by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v with_o right_n abolish_v because_o the_o reason_n of_o they_o be_v cease_v much_o more_o those_o which_o be_v take_v up_o at_o the_o begin_n upon_o humane_a appointment_n of_o the_o church_n may_v cease_v when_o the_o reason_n of_o that_o good_a appear_v not_o and_o must_v cease_v when_o evil_a consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v into_o the_o church_n at_o their_o heel_n begin_v to_o appear_v this_o be_v that_o which_o justifi_v the_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v wherein_o some_o observance_n in_o the_o church_n as_o ancient_a as_o there_o be_v remembrance_n in_o it_o of_o thing_n use_v since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v perhaps_o abolish_v by_o law_n or_o disuse_v by_o custom_n the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o dead_a at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o example_n the_o reason_n of_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o comfort_n which_o it_o receive_v at_o the_o communion_n profess_v with_o the_o decease_a not_o be_v now_o require_v in_o particular_a by_o they_o which_o presume_v of_o it_o in_o all_o that_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o abuse_n which_o it_o have_v train_v in_o after_o it_o appear_v unsufferable_a but_o all_o this_o be_v grant_v the_o consideration_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o precedent_n of_o it_o to_o my_o understanding_n prescribe_v two_o thing_n the_o first_o be_v general_a as_o it_o be_v a_o church_n and_o all_o church_n make_v one_o church_n by_o acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v union_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n that_o have_v be_v in_o other_o age_n as_o well_o as_o with_o the_o church_n that_o be_v in_o other_o country_n we_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o disclaim_v not_o to_o renounce_v it_o but_o to_o maintain_v ourselves_o always_o of_o communion_n with_o it_o without_o substantial_a difference_n of_o belief_n or_o practice_n the_o donatist_n in_o old_a time_n as_o s._n augustine_n charge_v fall_v foul_a upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o they_o acknowledge_v no_o church_n but_o their_o own_o but_o think_v it_o have_v fail_v in_o all_o other_o country_n by_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n from_o which_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o much_o more_o foul_a must_v he_o needs_o fall_v upon_o that_o article_n that_o think_v the_o church_n perish_v almost_o as_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o proceed_v in_o his_o practice_n as_o oblige_v to_o renounce_v that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o first_o age_n to_o maintain_v this_o communion_n it_o be_v not_o requisite_a we_o commend_v but_o it_o be_v necessary_a we_o tolerate_v all_o that_o be_v then_o in_o practice_n though_o we_o believe_v some_o thing_n may_v be_v mend_v at_o this_o time_n we_o must_v not_o believe_v any_o thing_n be_v pernicious_a at_o that_o time_n this_o indeed_o in_o the_o height_n concern_v they_o which_o separate_v from_o this_o church_n let_v they_o advise_v upon_o what_o term_n they_o renounce_v that_o church_n which_o communicate_v with_o the_o primitive_a church_n with_o which_o all_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o hold_v correspondence_n but_o in_o a_o low_a degree_n concern_v all_o those_o that_o think_v they_o can_v detest_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enough_o till_o they_o involve_v the_o primitive_a church_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v upon_o the_o precedent_n of_o it_o in_o the_o same_o imputation_n which_o stick_v upon_o it_o which_o be_v out_o of_o indiscreet_a zeal_n to_o our_o own_o cause_n to_o prevaricate_v against_o it_o and_o for_o the_o blindness_n of_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v it_o to_o oversee_v the_o advantage_n of_o it_o for_o what_o great_a pleasure_n can_v we_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n then_o to_o quit_v they_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o their_o clear_a advantage_n or_o what_o great_a scandal_n can_v we_o fasten_v upon_o the_o reformation_n which_o we_o love_v then_o to_o make_v every_o thing_n we_o like_v not_o a_o mark_n of_o antichrist_n for_o which_o we_o hold_v ourselves_o bind_v to_o separate_v which_o if_o we_o shall_v do_v upon_o no_o other_o matter_n than_o those_o which_o some_o man_n will_v have_v to_o be_v such_o then_o be_v we_o as_o true_a schismatics_n as_o they_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v we_o the_o second_o be_v a_o advantage_n more_o particular_a to_o the_o point_n we_o be_v in_o hand_n with_o as_o it_o be_v the_o church_n primitive_a near_o the_o fountain_n and_o resent_v that_o fire_n the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v inspire_v so_o late_o that_o which_o discourse_n of_o reason_n conclude_v to_o be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n must_v needs_o appear_v more_o reasonable_a if_o it_o be_v then_o in_o practice_n be_v the_o question_n about_o matter_n difficult_a and_o obscure_a in_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n knowledge_n go_v along_o with_o gray_a hair_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o the_o church_n may_v improve_v in_o it_o as_o in_o time_n but_o whereas_o it_o be_v say_v afore_o that_o we_o be_v to_o use_v our_o common_a reason_n in_o judge_v what_o be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o order_n of_o public_a service_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o these_o be_v matter_n that_o require_v so_o much_o depth_n of_o understanding_n as_o they_o do_v uprightness_n of_o disposition_n to_o give_v sentence_n without_o inclination_n or_o prejudice_n i_o say_v then_o that_o when_o the_o coast_n be_v clear_a of_o partiality_n the_o matter_n in_o hand_n not_o controvert_v on_o any_o side_n the_o church_n bend_v more_o to_o act_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n then_o to_o dispute_v about_o it_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o time_n may_v be_v a_o way_n too_o steep_a for_o we_o to_o tread_v but_o sure_o it_o be_v straight_o to_o direct_v we_o we_o must_v not_o slight_v those_o order_n which_o direct_v they_o to_o make_v the_o service_n of_o god_n their_o earnest_a business_n because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v it_o a_o formal_a employment_n to_o pass_v the_o time_n over_o with_o if_o in_o weed_n this_o garden_n of_o god_n church_n we_o pluck_v up_o wholesome_a ordinance_n with_o the_o abuse_n which_o have_v be_v pin_v to_o they_o well_o may_v man_n devise_v law_n for_o a_o good_a fence_n but_o not_o to_o much_o purpose_n when_o religion_n be_v not_o suffer_v to_o grow_v within_o the_o pale_a that_o noble_a and_o learned_a du_n plessis_n think_v it_o a_o great_a advantage_n to_o the_o cause_n he_o undertake_v against_o the_o mass_n if_o he_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o form_n of_o service_n use_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o france_n to_o be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n then_o that_o of_o the_o masse-book_n of_o rome_n this_o he_o think_v worth_a his_o pain_n to_o undertake_v and_o if_o we_o regard_v the_o substance_n of_o public_a service_n may_v well_o be_v think_v to_o have_v perform_v it_o i_o be_o yet_o in_o a_o more_o general_a point_n concern_v the_o order_n of_o public_a service_n but_o i_o shall_v think_v it_o advantage_n enough_o to_o the_o cause_n in_o which_o i_o deal_v to_o show_v the_o point_n question_v in_o this_o order_n to_o be_v of_o more_o ancient_a practice_n in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o which_o we_o leave_v it_o and_o when_o i_o come_v anon_o to_o survey_v the_o particular_a form_n of_o service_n which_o this_o church_n use_v let_v man_n of_o learning_n judge_v what_o be_v near_o to_o the_o primitive_a then_o both_o but_o thereupon_o i_o must_v take_v leave_n to_o conclude_v that_o this_o church_n be_v not_o to_o forsake_v the_o primitive_a to_o conform_v to_o other_o reform_a church_n where_o the_o order_n in_o force_n have_v both_o the_o precedent_n of_o so_o ancient_a practice_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o edification_n to_o commend_v it_o now_o the_o difference_n between_o this_o state_n of_o the_o church_n incorporate_v into_o the_o body_n of_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o the_o primitive_a when_o it_o be_v either_o tolerate_v or_o persecute_v under_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o apostle_n fish_v after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n john_n xxii_o 11._o though_o there_o be_v take_v 153._o great_a fish_n yet_o the_o net_n break_v not_o for_o the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o one_o soul_n act_v iiii_o 32._o they_o come_v out_o of_o good_a will_n into_o the_o net_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o out_o of_o good_a will_v they_o apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o order_n wherein_o they_o be_v direct_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n not_o able_a to_o constrain_v
obedience_n so_o the_o net_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o to_o hold_v they_o and_o yet_o break_v not_o but_o when_o the_o world_n come_v into_o the_o church_n than_o be_v the_o parable_n of_o our_o lord_n more_o clear_o fulfil_v which_o resemble_v the_o gospel_n to_o a_o net_n which_o draw_v to_o the_o land_n both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n and_o when_o the_o net_n be_v not_o strengthen_v by_o the_o secular_a arm_n no_o marvel_n to_o see_v it_o break_v in_o piece_n it_o be_v therefore_o requisite_a that_o the_o order_n of_o public_a service_n have_v the_o force_n of_o temporal_a law_n by_o act_n of_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n but_o it_o be_v nevertheless_o requisite_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v direct_v by_o the_o office_n of_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n no_o otherwise_o than_o it_o be_v before_o the_o empire_n or_o any_o commonwealth_n receive_v the_o faith_n the_o charge_n of_o direct_v belong_v to_o the_o one_o which_o can_v be_v dispossess_v of_o it_o the_o power_n of_o constrain_a belong_v to_o the_o other_o which_o must_v give_v account_n how_o they_o use_v it_o or_o not_o heb._n xiii_o 17._o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o or_o guide_v you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n as_o they_o that_o must_v give_v account_n 1._o thess_n v._o 12_o 13._o and_o we_o beseech_v you_o brethren_n to_o know_v they_o which_o labour_n among_o you_o and_o be_v over_o you_o in_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o esteem_v they_o very_o high_o in_o love_n for_o their_o work_n sake_n what_o can_v these_o exhortation_n and_o injunction_n of_o the_o apostle_n concern_v if_o in_o matter_n so_o proper_a to_o their_o charge_n as_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o order_n of_o it_o those_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speak_v be_v not_o to_o direct_v but_o to_o execute_v and_o when_o those_o disorder_n fall_v among_o the_o corinthian_n in_o their_o feast_n of_o love_n and_o receive_v the_o mystery_n in_o pray_v praise_v god_n and_o preach_v in_o unknown_a language_n no_o doubt_n through_o those_o partiality_n of_o the_o presbyter_n the_o ordinary_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n there_o where_o of_o have_v be_v speak_v elsewhere_o the_o apostle_n indeed_o himself_o take_v order_n in_o his_o time_n but_o in_o case_n the_o like_a fall_n out_o afterward_o have_v he_o not_o authorize_v the_o ordinary_a ministery_n of_o the_o church_n by_o his_o example_n to_o take_v order_n in_o like_a matter_n and_o when_o he_o write_v to_o timothy_n 1._o tim._n two_o 1._o i_o will_v therefore_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n wherein_o without_o peradventure_o he_o take_v order_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o public_a prayer_n for_o their_o assembly_n as_o shall_v appear_v be_v it_o his_o purpose_n to_o refer_v the_o order_n of_o it_o to_o the_o congregation_n there_o or_o to_o his_o office_n who_o he_o incharge_v with_o it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v indeed_o how_o much_o king_n david_n do_v in_o order_v the_o public_a course_n of_o divine_a service_n in_o his_o time_n but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v how_o he_o proceed_v in_o it_o by_o that_o which_o we_o read_v 1._o chron._n xv_o 16_o 17._o and_o david_n speak_v to_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o levite_n to_o appoint_v their_o brethren_n singer_n with_o instrument_n of_o music_n psaltery_n and_o harp_n and_o cymbal_n sound_v by_o lift_v up_o the_o voice_n with_o joy_n and_o the_o levite_n appoint_v heman_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v the_o very_a course_n by_o which_o we_o pretend_v such_o thing_n be_v to_o pass_v but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o from_o the_o begin_n thing_n come_v to_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o order_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n so_o when_o emperor_n kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n receive_v the_o faith_n they_o purchase_v themselves_o no_o right_n of_o dispose_v in_o such_o matter_n as_o by_o the_o scripture_n belong_v to_o the_o minister_n charge_v but_o they_o impose_v upon_o themselves_o the_o charge_n of_o enforce_v these_o order_n which_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o godliness_n and_o therefore_o upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n they_o be_v to_o proceed_v in_o deny_v or_o enforce_v the_o execution_n of_o that_o which_o be_v direct_v by_o they_o who_o charge_n it_o concern_v if_o they_o proceed_v further_o they_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o the_o good_a aswell_o as_o for_o the_o wrong_n which_o they_o do_v so_o far_o as_o that_o which_o be_v do_v for_o the_o better_a as_o it_o advance_v the_o public_a good_a in_o the_o particular_a substance_n of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v so_o it_o may_v prejudice_v it_o more_o in_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o example_n let_v we_o then_o recollect_v from_o the_o first_o to_o the_o last_o what_o have_v be_v say_v of_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n proceed_v in_o regulate_v matter_n concern_v the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n be_v to_o proceed_v no_o otherwise_o first_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o instruction_n of_o god_n people_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o &_o the_o train_n of_o they_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n be_v the_o aim_n propose_v this_o be_v procure_v by_o observe_v order_n and_o comeliness_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v of_o that_o nature_n the_o best_a and_o most_o unpartial_a reason_n be_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o judge_v what_o best_o become_v in_o matter_n of_o this_o weight_n and_o because_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a to_o put_v these_o ordinance_n past_o contradiction_n of_o opposite_a reason_n the_o custom_n direct_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o advice_n of_o common_a reason_n and_o most_o primitive_a and_o universal_a precedent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o enforce_v by_o the_o secular_a arm_n be_v to_o take_v place_n for_o order_n sake_n if_o after_o all_o this_o a_o question_n be_v make_v whether_o matter_n establish_v with_o a_o tolerable_a respect_n to_o the_o fiducial_a line_n of_o this_o rule_n oblige_v man_n in_o conscience_n to_o observe_v they_o or_o not_o he_o shall_v leave_v the_o church_n obnoxious_a to_o perpetual_a confusion_n by_o necessary_a consequence_n see_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a that_o all_o man_n shall_v agree_v of_o their_o free_a accord_n to_o observe_v any_o course_n as_o fit_a to_o be_v observe_v unless_o they_o think_v themselves_o tie_v in_o conscience_n to_o observe_v that_o rule_n which_o for_o the_o latitude_n and_o kind_n of_o it_o be_v not_o sinful_a for_o themselves_o to_o observe_v and_o that_o if_o they_o fail_v they_o may_v be_v constrain_v to_o it_o because_o it_o be_v establish_v possible_a it_o be_v that_o man_n proceed_v in_o the_o form_n of_o this_o rule_n shall_v so_o far_o mistake_v themselves_o as_o to_o enjoin_v the_o church_n to_o violate_v some_o of_o god_n law_n in_o obey_v they_o in_o such_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v with_o his_o blood_n to_o maintain_v his_o disobedience_n but_o our_o speech_n concern_v matter_n of_o indifference_n where_o the_o perpetual_a law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n forbid_v not_o the_o whole_a kind_n and_o latitude_n of_o the_o thing_n command_v where_o no_o perpetual_a law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n no_o positive_a constitution_n of_o god_n or_o man_n that_o aught_o to_o take_v place_n afore_o this_o come_v between_o if_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n strengthen_v by_o the_o secular_a arm_n bound_v not_o a_o man_n in_o conscience_n by_o virtue_n of_o that_o law_n of_o god_n that_o enforce_v obedience_n to_o their_o author_n to_o do_v according_a to_o they_o then_o must_v all_o man_n be_v at_o their_o freedom_n to_o dissolve_v or_o preserve_v order_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o they_o please_v where_o nothing_o but_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o probable_a reason_n direct_v our_o practice_n we_o must_v not_o proceed_v according_a to_o our_o private_a reason_n which_o persuade_v the_o contrary_a but_o according_a to_o public_a custom_n if_o we_o will_v be_v rule_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o where_o there_o be_v law_n to_o constrain_v we_o we_o may_v perhaps_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v that_o the_o author_n of_o law_n may_v have_v do_v better_a in_o order_v matter_n otherwise_o and_o yet_o be_v bind_v ourselves_o to_o follow_v the_o course_n which_o they_o prescribe_v they_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o the_o thing_n they_o enjoin_v we_o for_o our_o performance_n when_o be_v any_o humane_a law_n make_v that_o can_v not_o be_v fault_v if_o our_o obedience_n be_v delay_v till_o it_o find_v such_o law_n as_o no_o fault_n can_v be_v
draw_v in_o consequence_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o that_o way_n which_o they_o desire_n to_o render_v commendable_a but_o when_o we_o hear_v these_o fly_a pretence_n pass_v up_o and_o down_o by_o which_o those_o demur_n of_o humane_a imperfection_n be_v entitle_v to_o those_o unutterable_a groan_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n indit_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v reason_n not_o to_o admire_v the_o occasion_n of_o such_o unsufferable_a profaneness_n what_o shall_v we_o say_v then_o of_o the_o mean_a rank_n of_o person_n by_o who_o extemporary_a conception_n and_o expression_n in_o such_o high_a office_n must_v be_v minister_v but_o this_o that_o the_o ill_a order_n by_o which_o they_o be_v vent_v to_o the_o world_n must_v needs_o bring_v religion_n to_o be_v contemptible_a again_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n opinion_n and_o inclination_n in_o regard_n of_o several_a discretion_n and_o judgement_n in_o point_n of_o what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v recommend_v to_o god_n in_o public_a prayer_n which_o way_n shall_v we_o attain_v that_o order_n that_o reverence_n which_o this_o office_n require_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n if_o man_n be_v leave_v to_o themselves_o whatsoever_o opinion_n in_o religion_n whatsoever_o debate_n between_o neighbour_n whatsoever_o public_a matter_n of_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n a_o man_n shall_v please_v to_o make_v his_o interest_n upon_o like_a reason_n he_o may_v make_v the_o subject_n of_o his_o prayer_n and_o of_o the_o congregation_n which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o well_o direct_v as_o what_o man_n be_v free_a from_o mistake_n where_o man_n may_v be_v and_o always_o be_v of_o divers_a opinion_n must_v either_o pursue_v his_o interest_n for_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o their_o desire_n or_o as_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v must_v be_v scandalize_v at_o that_o which_o be_v do_v i_o have_v rather_o belie_v my_o own_o sense_n then_o charge_v any_o man_n with_o that_o which_o appear_v not_o but_o if_o experience_n tell_v we_o not_o that_o such_o thing_n have_v be_v do_v that_o man_n prayer_n in_o the_o church_n have_v smoke_v with_o their_o choler_n in_o private_a and_o public_a matter_n yet_o reason_n will_v tell_v we_o how_o easy_o it_o may_v be_v do_v and_o such_o ordinance_n point_v in_o time_n against_o they_o that_o least_o deserve_v it_o in_o church_n or_o commonwealth_n as_o the_o matter_n be_v among_o we_o we_o see_v how_o far_a man_n mind_n be_v from_o be_v agree_v when_o we_o be_v to_o pray_v for_o fair_a weather_n and_o when_o for_o rain_v make_v particular_a person_n infallible_a judge_n not_o of_o a_o thing_n of_o that_o consequence_n but_o of_o whatsoever_o may_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o our_o prayer_n and_o we_o make_v they_o all_o pope_n in_o their_o congregation_n make_v they_o not_o infallible_a and_o we_o multiply_v scandal_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n to_o the_o world_n end_n to_o which_o no_o man_n shall_v come_v till_o all_o be_v end_v last_o of_o all_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ingenious_a conception_n of_o man_n mind_n it_o be_v not_o the_o eloquent_a expression_n of_o their_o tongue_n that_o god_n be_v affect_v with_o the_o minister_n devotion_n will_v prove_v more_o free_a towards_o god_n when_o his_o mind_n be_v less_o at_o work_n in_o frame_v term_n to_o express_v what_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v for_o the_o purpose_n but_o if_o we_o have_v regard_n unto_o the_o mean_a rank_n in_o knowledge_n as_o well_o as_o in_o estate_n which_o be_v always_o the_o great_a part_n and_o therefore_o in_o who_o charity_n have_v the_o most_o share_n it_o will_v appear_v a_o great_a advantage_n to_o their_o devotion_n to_o run_v smooth_a upon_o the_o form_n to_o which_o they_o be_v practise_v which_o must_v needs_o be_v intercept_v with_o study_v the_o meaning_n of_o new_a one_o which_o they_o be_v direct_v with_o this_o be_v that_o which_o my_o reason_n be_v able_a to_o inform_v in_o this_o point_n whether_o a_o prescript_n form_n of_o prayer_n be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o maintain_v order_n and_o reverence_n in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n or_o not_o let_v we_o see_v which_o way_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n incline_v or_o have_v incline_v though_o the_o matter_n be_v great_a as_o concern_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n charge_v and_o the_o form_n of_o serve_v god_n a_o man_n shall_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o suspect_v his_o own_o reason_n when_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o guide_v of_o it_o go_v before_o but_o i_o must_v begin_v with_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v moral_a and_o consist_v not_o in_o offer_v sacrifice_n that_o carry_v more_o prejudice_n with_o it_o then_o man_n reason_n can_v enforce_v that_o which_o be_v do_v there_o be_v precedent_n enough_o to_o presume_v that_o the_o like_a be_v not_o against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o scripture_n of_o this_o we_o read_v thus_o 1._o chron._n xxiii_o 30._o and_o to_o stand_v every_o morning_n to_o thank_v and_o praise_v the_o lord_n and_o likewise_o at_o evening_n and_o at_o all_o offer_v burnt-offering_n to_o the_o lord_n on_o the_o sabbath_n the_o new_a moon_n and_o the_o solemn_a assembly_n for_o without_o doubt_n the_o purpose_n be_v here_o to_o specify_v at_o what_o time_n the_o levite_n sing_v the_o psalm_n of_o god_n praise_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o temple_n whereof_o we_o read_v afore_o 1._o chron._n xuj_o 4._o and_o he_o appoint_v of_o the_o levite_n to_o minister_n before_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o record_v and_o thank_v and_o praise_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n and_o again_o vers_fw-la 37._o the_o same_o be_v repeat_v but_o afterward_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o priest_n who_o david_n leave_v to_o sacrifice_v upon_o the_o altar_n at_o gibeon_n it_o follow_v vers_fw-la 41._o and_o with_o they_o heman_n and_o jeduthun_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o be_v choose_v that_o be_v express_v by_o name_n to_o give_v thanks_o to_o the_o lord_n because_o his_o mercy_n endure_v for_o ever_o here_o you_o shall_v perceive_v the_o time_n and_o the_o place_n of_o this_o service_n express_v in_o scripture_n part_v of_o they_o with_o asaph_n be_v to_o minister_v before_o the_o ark_n part_n with_o heman_n and_o jeduthun_n to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o lord_n where_o the_o priest_n offer_v the_o burnt-offering_a morning_n and_o evening_n vers_fw-la 40._o for_o the_o time_n that_o the_o altar_n be_v at_o gibeon_n the_o ark_n in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n but_o for_o a_o perpetual_a course_n as_o you_o have_v it_o xxiii_o 30._o to_o stand_v every_o morning_n to_o thank_v and_o praise_v the_o lord_n and_o likewise_o at_o evening_n and_o at_o all_o offering_n of_o burnt-offering_n to_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o sabbath_n in_o the_o new_a moon_n and_o on_o the_o assembly_n for_o thus_o it_o must_v here_o be_v translate_v as_o r._n david_n kimchi_n have_v gloss_v it_o that_o they_o shall_v also_o be_v ready_a to_o praise_v when_o the_o burnt-sacrifice_n be_v offer_v on_o the_o sabbath_n and_o new_a moon_n and_o day_n of_o assembly_n and_o also_o to_o help_v the_o priest_n on_o these_o day_n when_o there_o be_v many_o offering_n for_o by_o this_o exposition_n be_v signify_v both_o the_o help_n which_o the_o priest_n have_v from_o the_o levite_n in_o sacrifice_v and_o also_o the_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n at_o which_o the_o levite_n sing_v psalm_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n maimoni_fw-la cele_n hammikdash_n c._n iii._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o when_o do_v they_o sing_v over_o all_o the_o burnt-offering_n of_o the_o congregation_n which_o be_v due_a and_o over_o the_o peace_n offering_n of_o a_o assembly_n at_o the_o pour_v of_o the_o wine_n but_o the_o voluntary_a burnt-offering_n of_o the_o congregation_n over_o these_o they_o sing_v not_o the_o song_n a_o rule_n without_o doubt_n raise_v from_o the_o scripture_n allege_v and_o the_o place_n here_o signify_v where_o they_o stand_v to_o sing_v that_o be_v before_o the_o ark_n be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v signify_v at_o solomon_n sacrifice_n 2._o chron._n v._n 12._o where_o they_o stand_v east_n from_o the_o altar_n as_o it_o must_v be_v translate_v that_o be_v at_o the_o east_n gate_n of_o the_o temple_n either_o before_o the_o man_n court_n or_o before_o the_o woman_n court._n for_o at_o both_o these_o gate_n there_o be_v a_o pulpit_n for_o the_o levite_n where_o at_o all_o these_o time_n stand_v twelve_o at_o the_o least_o for_o this_o purpose_n maimoni_n as_o before_o and_o before_o the_o latter_a be_v those_o fifteen_o step_n from_o which_o the_o fifteen_o psalm_n of_o degree_n be_v name_v because_o they_o be_v sing_v there_o as_o the_o talmudist_n will_v have_v it_o mass_n middoth_n cap._n
the_o more_o discreet_a speak_v of_o other_o service_n such_o as_o that_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n concern_v but_o be_v of_o no_o more_o credit_n it_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v sift_v so_o near_o add_v to_o all_o this_o the_o tradition_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n what_o this_o or_o that_o pope_n add_v to_o the_o prayer_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o which_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o discredit_v for_o the_o whole_a and_o it_o will_v appear_v both_o that_o there_o be_v a_o set_a form_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o continual_a alteration_n the_o true_a reason_n why_o the_o primitive_a form_n can_v now_o be_v exhibit_v i_o be_o not_o so_o credulous_a as_o to_o entitle_v the_o liturgy_n father_v upon_o s._n james_n s._n mark_n s._n peter_n no_o nor_o s._n basil_n or_o s._n chrysostome_n as_o now_o we_o have_v they_o to_o the_o person_n who_o name_n they_o wear_v but_o i_o be_o confident_a they_o be_v the_o service_n frequent_v in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n alexandria_n rome_n constantinople_n and_o the_o part_n of_o the_o east_n that_o follow_v s._n basil_n in_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n from_o the_o time_n that_o they_o be_v put_v in_o this_o frame_n and_o that_o to_o this_o frame_n they_o be_v reduce_v through_o those_o change_n which_o several_a age_n have_v bring_v to_o pass_v from_o a_o prescript_n form_n at_o the_o beginning_n though_o not_o this_o for_o example_n that_o which_o be_v call_v s._n peter_n be_v word_n for_o word_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o roman_a missal_n with_o some_o part_n of_o the_o eastern_a liturgy_n which_o i_o find_v not_o yet_o to_o have_v be_v frequent_v in_o the_o western_a from_o hence_o we_o have_v ground_n enough_o to_o imagine_v why_o it_o have_v be_v call_v s._n peter_n that_o of_o s._n james_n we_o may_v discern_v to_o be_v the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n by_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o relate_v to_o in_o the_o catechises_n attribute_v to_o cyrill_v of_o jerusalem_n catech._n v._o that_o of_o s._n mark_n may_v be_v discern_v for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n by_o the_o great_a agreement_n it_o carry_v with_o that_o of_o s._n cyrill_n sometime_o patriarch_n and_o with_o the_o ethiopic_a receive_v from_o thence_o as_o from_o their_o mother-church_n both_o in_o biblioth_n patrum_fw-la but_o as_o for_o the_o alteration_n to_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v these_o liturgy_n have_v be_v subject_a from_o time_n to_o time_n we_o have_v this_o confession_n of_o victorius_n sciatach_n the_o maronite_n at_o rome_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o velseius_n of_o ausburg_n before_o the_o three_o liturgy_n which_o at_o the_o request_n of_o his_o friend_n he_o turn_v for_o he_o out_o of_o the_o arabic_a copy_n send_v he_o by_o scaliger_n nam_fw-la ut_fw-la latini_n ipsi_fw-la &_o graeci_fw-la pontifices_fw-la multa_fw-la deinceps_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la liturgiis_fw-la quas_fw-la jam_fw-la indè_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n acceperant_fw-la pro_fw-la re_fw-la nata_fw-la vel_fw-la immutarunt_fw-la vel_fw-la addiderunt_fw-la ità_fw-la etiam_fw-la ab_fw-la alexandrinis_fw-la &_o aegyptiis_fw-la par_fw-fr est_fw-la credere_fw-la pro_fw-la temporum_fw-la opportunitate_fw-la factitatum_fw-la for_o as_o the_o latin_a and_o greek_a prelate_n either_o add_v or_o change_v upon_o occasion_n divers_a thing_n afterward_o in_o the_o liturgy_n which_o they_o receive_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n so_o be_v it_o meet_v to_o think_v be_v do_v according_a to_o the_o occasion_n of_o time_n by_o those_o of_o alexandria_n and_o egypt_n of_o the_o alteration_n make_v in_o the_o roman_a service_n by_o the_o pope_n gelasius_n and_o gregory_n the_o great_a beside_o other_o the_o remembrance_n be_v quick_a and_o fresh_a in_o divers_a writer_n the_o like_v it_o be_v reasonable_a to_o conceive_v of_o other_o active_a prelate_n this_o he_o very_o pertinent_o argue_v afterward_o from_o the_o copy_n which_o he_o translate_v in_o which_o the_o liturgy_n call_v s._n basils_n be_v couch_v at_o large_a of_o the_o two_o that_o remain_n entitle_v to_o gregory_n the_o divine_a and_o s._n cyrill_n nothing_o be_v set_v down_o but_o the_o passage_n of_o difference_n from_o that_o of_o s._n basil_n though_o be_v subject_a to_o such_o continual_a alteration_n we_o can_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o as_o they_o be_v to_o have_v be_v compose_v by_o those_o person_n who_o name_n they_o bear_v and_o this_o truth_n we_o must_v take_v notice_n to_o be_v of_o great_a advantage_n to_o the_o cause_n of_o that_o reformation_n which_o we_o profess_v for_o presume_v as_o we_o do_v that_o a_o alteration_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n have_v come_v to_o pass_v what_o better_a account_n can_v we_o give_v how_o it_o shall_v be_v effect_v what_o more_o reasonable_a way_n can_v we_o assign_v of_o convey_v it_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n then_o by_o unsensible_a alteration_n in_o the_o form_n of_o public_a service_n which_o so_o long_o as_o we_o know_v in_o general_a to_o have_v be_v do_v there_o be_v just_a cause_n otherwise_o to_o presume_v that_o it_o have_v be_v to_o that_o purpose_n which_o we_o oppose_v and_o if_o the_o trace_n hereof_o be_v well_o hunt_v in_o particular_a perhaps_o it_o may_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v to_o common_a sense_n in_o the_o main_a particular_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o reform_v so_o when_o demand_n be_v make_v to_o exhibit_v the_o copy_n of_o primitive_a liturgy_n the_o case_n be_v much_o as_o it_o be_v of_o old_a at_o athens_n in_o the_o dispute_n about_o theseus_n his_o ship_n in_o plutarch_n whether_o this_o which_o have_v be_v so_o change_v that_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v what_o part_n of_o it_o remain_v be_v the_o same_o or_o not_o suppose_v we_o leave_v the_o problem_n to_o those_o keen_a wit_n of_o greece_n that_o start_v it_o i_o suppose_v it_o can_v not_o be_v question_v on_o any_o side_n that_o there_o have_v be_v once_o such_o a_o ship_n of_o theseus_n in_o our_o case_n i_o shall_v hope_v to_o produce_v some_o rib_n or_o limb_n of_o the_o service_n practise_v and_o prescribe_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o though_o i_o presume_v not_o with_o that_o maronite_n that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o prescribe_v the_o form_n and_o deliver_v to_o those_o which_o succeed_v they_o have_v show_v afore_o that_o for_o that_o time_n the_o part_n of_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o immediate_a inspiration_n of_o god_n spirit_n yet_o this_o i_o will_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o conclude_v out_o of_o the_o premise_n that_o as_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o synagogue_n afore_o so_o in_o the_o church_n afterward_o when_o those_o inspiration_n be_v cease_v they_o betake_v themselves_o on_o all_o hand_n to_o prescript_n form_n which_o at_o the_o first_o derive_v from_o the_o primitive_a practice_n retain_v that_o agreement_n in_o several_a place_n which_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o still_o appear_v and_o be_v propagate_v from_o the_o great_a church_n at_o the_o first_o have_v at_o length_n all_o yield_v in_o a_o manner_n to_o the_o principal_a by_o balsamon_n in_o can._n xxxii_o sex_n syn._n and_o his_o answer_n to_o mark_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n it_o appear_v how_o desirous_a the_o service_n of_o s._n chrystostome_n that_o be_v of_o constantinople_n be_v to_o put_v down_o these_o of_o jerusalem_n and_o alexandria_n and_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_a how_o the_o roman_a mass_n which_o be_v once_o the_o gregorian_a service_n have_v abolish_v the_o spanish_a gaulish_n and_o german_a order_n and_o confine_v that_o which_o be_v entitle_v to_o s._n ambrose_n to_o his_o own_o church_n of_o milan_n that_o this_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o prescript_n form_n of_o service_n be_v not_o against_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n or_o the_o judgement_n of_o chief_a reformer_n a_o few_o word_n shall_v serve_v to_o conclude_v in_o particular_a in_o this_o of_o england_n for_o which_o i_o plead_v that_o the_o principal_a of_o the_o clergy_n shall_v be_v employ_v to_o advise_v the_o whole_a kingdom_n assemble_v to_o enact_v a_o form_n of_o service_n to_o the_o purpose_n that_o those_o which_o can_v make_v no_o prayer_n of_o their_o own_o head_n may_v use_v it_o as_o cork_n to_o help_v they_o to_o swim_v with_o not_o for_o any_o of_o these_o consideration_n express_v afore_o especial_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o once_o enact_v have_v be_v without_o interruption_n ever_o since_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o far_o from_o common_a reason_n to_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o believe_v that_o those_o which_o speak_v it_o believe_v themselves_o in_o it_o in_o luther_n reformation_n the_o question_n be_v not_o make_v though_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v show_v why_o their_o example_n shall_v not_o be_v draw_v into_o consequence_n here_o as_o for_o the_o
other_o according_a to_o calvine_n so_o far_o as_o my_o lot_n have_v be_v to_o know_v the_o preacher_n of_o it_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o have_v make_v i_o much_o marvel_n to_o see_v they_o so_o punctual_a in_o practise_v their_o form_n prescribe_v that_o scarce_o any_o thing_n come_v from_o the_o minister_n themselves_o but_o that_o very_o short_a prayer_n afore_o the_o sermon_n wherein_o they_o recommend_v themselves_o and_o their_o performance_n to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n as_o you_o see_v the_o fashion_n be_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n because_o it_o be_v find_v that_o the_o opinion_n which_o this_o church_n have_v be_v disquiet_v with_o be_v take_v up_o upon_o unreasonable_a affectation_n to_o be_v conformable_a with_o they_o those_o that_o pretend_v their_o example_n be_v bind_v to_o show_v we_o among_o they_o the_o principle_n whereupon_o this_o point_n be_v condemn_v that_o a_o prescript_n form_n be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v in_o quench_v the_o spirit_n therefore_o it_o will_v not_o be_v enough_o to_o say_v that_o divers_a church_n of_o that_o reformation_n use_v to_o neglect_v the_o order_n appoint_v they_o and_o use_v the_o voluntary_a conception_n of_o their_o minister_n in_o public_a prayer_n for_o that_o may_v be_v think_v of_o all_o and_o of_o we_o for_o the_o reason_n premise_v must_v be_v think_v a_o example_n of_o ill_a consequence_n &_o not_o for_o this_o church_n to_o imitate_v but_o it_o be_v requisite_a to_o allege_v the_o same_o reason_n from_o their_o doctor_n and_o to_o show_v that_o they_o disallow_v set_v prayer_n as_o quench_v the_o spirit_n to_o which_o purpose_n i_o have_v not_o yet_o hear_v any_o thing_n produce_v either_o from_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n or_o from_o the_o reform_a doctor_n and_o therefore_o till_o that_o be_v do_v i_o be_o bold_a to_o send_v home_o that_o principle_n to_o they_o that_o have_v most_o right_o to_o own_o in_o that_o be_v to_o those_o of_o the_o separation_n from_o this_o church_n of_o england_n or_o rather_o to_o those_o german_a sectary_n that_o dream_v of_o enthusiasm_n and_o immediate_a inspiration_n chap._n viii_o of_o time_n of_o assembly_n daily_o morning_n and_o evening_n service_n be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n humane_a institution_n of_o festival_n lawful_a public_a service_n upon_o they_o and_o upon_o weekly_a and_o yearly_a time_n of_o fast_v be_v for_o increase_v of_o godliness_n of_o frequent_a celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n hour_n of_o prayer_n among_o the_o apostle_n and_o primitive_a christian_n from_o the_o synagogue_n festival_n of_o the_o law_n for_o gladness_n and_o those_o of_o humane_a institution_n in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o fasting-day_n in_o the_o synagogue_n and_o primitive_a church_n how_o the_o eucharist_n be_v frequent_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o order_n of_o this_o church_n agreeable_a with_o the_o judgement_n of_o chief_a reformer_n the_o next_o point_n concern_v in_o general_a the_o order_n of_o public_a service_n be_v the_o difference_n of_o time_n and_o day_n and_o hour_n in_o respect_n of_o frequent_v our_o assembly_n for_o the_o purpose_n of_o it_o and_o first_o the_o order_n of_o daily_a morning_n and_o evening_n service_n how_o much_o it_o concern_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o train_n of_o it_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n a_o point_n otherwise_o to_o be_v plead_v then_o the_o rest_n for_o in_o other_o matter_n we_o have_v reason_n or_o at_o least_o the_o shadow_n of_o reason_n to_o deal_v with_o in_o this_o it_o be_v not_o for_o christian_n to_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n to_o be_v serve_v in_o public_a or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o people_n to_o join_v together_o in_o address_v their_o petition_n in_o procure_v their_o daily_a want_n at_o his_o hand_n nevertheless_o as_o if_o these_o consideration_n be_v to_o give_v way_n to_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o world_n those_o that_o deny_v they_o not_o to_o be_v valuable_a be_v content_a to_o let_v they_o and_o the_o order_n of_o daily_a service_n ground_v upon_o they_o be_v uneffectual_a and_o to_o no_o purpose_n this_o be_v not_o the_o place_n to_o dispute_v how_o much_o the_o consideration_n of_o god_n service_n be_v to_o outweigh_v the_o world_n and_o the_o occasion_n of_o it_o only_o because_o it_o may_v be_v say_v how_o many_o idle_a belly_n be_v maintain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o pater_n over_o their_o matin_n and_o evensong_n in_o a_o manner_n not_o regard_v by_o themselves_o and_o a_o language_n not_o understand_v by_o the_o people_n let_v it_o be_v consider_v what_o great_a advantage_n the_o devil_n can_v wish_v to_o make_v of_o this_o abuse_n among_o they_o then_o upon_o occasion_n of_o it_o to_o bring_v the_o service_n of_o god_n into_o disuse_n among_o we_o or_o how_o he_o can_v have_v improve_v this_o scandal_n to_o more_o purpose_n for_o the_o hinder_v of_o goodness_n than_o root_a out_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n service_n rather_o than_o reform_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o it_o in_o the_o next_o place_n the_o difference_n of_o festival_n and_o fasting-day_n from_o the_o ordinary_a in_o respect_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n upon_o they_o be_v a_o order_n much_o concern_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n here_o indeed_o some_o pretence_n of_o reason_n have_v be_v make_v to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o appoint_v festival_n day_n as_o a_o thing_n contrary_n to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o law_n which_o say_v six_o day_n thou_o shall_v labour_v and_o do_v all_o that_o thou_o have_v to_o do_v i_o know_v not_o whether_o man_n by_o this_o time_n be_v ware_n of_o the_o mistake_n which_o this_o reason_n involve_v because_o it_o make_v not_o so_o much_o noise_n in_o these_o day_n but_o without_o doubt_v it_o be_v always_o a_o gross_a inconsequence_n to_o imagine_v a_o office_n of_o the_o second_o table_n of_o labour_v in_o ordinary_a work_n to_o be_v command_v by_o a_o law_n of_o the_o first_o table_n but_o without_o doubt_v it_o be_v always_o a_o gross_a inconvenience_n to_o imagine_v god_n to_o give_v a_o command_n here_o which_o we_o must_v suppose_v he_o to_o cross_v afterward_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n when_o he_o come_v to_o appoint_v new-moon_n and_o other_o solemnity_n to_o be_v observe_v on_o these_o six_o day_n therefore_o when_o the_o commandment_n say_v six_o day_n thou_o shall_v labour_v the_o meaning_n be_v six_o day_n thou_o may_v labour_v thou_o be_v license_v and_o not_o forbid_v to_o do_v thy_o daily_a work_n on_o they_o by_o this_o commandment_n so_o it_o be_v translate_v in_o our_o last_o english_a exod._n xxxi_o 15._o six_o day_n may_v work_v be_v do_v and_o in_o the_o hebrew_n the_o same_a word_n stand_v for_o both_o sense_n last_o of_o all_o whereas_o it_o be_v know_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o jew_n calendar_n at_o the_o time_n when_o our_o lord_n christ_n live_v upon_o earth_n divers_a solemnity_n beside_o those_o that_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n of_o which_o something_o must_v be_v say_v afterward_o and_o we_o know_v by_o the_o gospel_n that_o our_o lord_n himself_o keep_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n institute_v by_o judas_n macchabeus_n by_o that_o particular_a we_o be_v assure_v both_o that_o he_o observe_v the_o rest_n and_o that_o by_o observe_v he_o allow_v and_o commend_v the_o institution_n in_o general_a for_o the_o purpose_n whereof_o we_o speak_v for_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n whereof_o these_o solemnity_n renew_v the_o remembrance_n be_v of_o that_o esteem_n to_o the_o church_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o express_v too_o much_o thankfulness_n in_o take_v that_o occasion_n of_o solemnize_n his_o service_n and_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n be_v such_o as_o will_v receive_v much_o improvement_n in_o the_o principal_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n by_o the_o sensible_a instruction_n which_o the_o observation_n of_o such_o solemnity_n yield_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o birth_n the_o suffering_n the_o resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n the_o come_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n by_o send_v the_o apostle_n the_o way_n make_v before_o his_o come_n by_o the_o annunciation_n of_o the_o angel_n and_o the_o come_n of_o the_o baptist_n as_o it_o be_v a_o powerful_a mean_n to_o train_v the_o more_o ignorant_a sort_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o such_o great_a mystery_n so_o it_o be_v a_o just_a occasion_n for_o all_o sort_n to_o make_v that_o a_o particular_a time_n of_o serve_v god_n upon_o which_o we_o solemnize_v those_o great_a work_n of_o he_o for_o the_o purpose_n be_v not_o
to_o hinder_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o world_n by_o set_v aside_a man_n ordinary_a work_n but_o to_o prefer_v the_o service_n of_o god_n before_o it_o if_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n be_v of_o better_a esteem_n than_o the_o business_n of_o this_o world_n well_o may_v the_o church_n own_o all_o the_o mean_n by_o which_o she_o labour_v to_o procure_v the_o exercise_n of_o it_o but_o if_o the_o business_n of_o this_o world_n so_o far_o as_o it_o hinder_v not_o the_o service_n of_o god_n be_v good_a &_o commendable_a she_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o own_o the_o restraint_n of_o it_o further_o than_o it_o tend_v to_o that_o purpose_n therefore_o provide_v as_o it_o be_v among_o we_o that_o the_o wholesome_a effect_n of_o this_o ordinance_n vanish_v not_o in_o the_o excessive_a multitude_n of_o festival_n ordinary_a occasion_n crowd_v out_o the_o remembrance_n of_o those_o that_o deserve_v it_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n have_v make_v these_o solemnity_n the_o occasion_n of_o worship_v the_o saint_n that_o own_o the_o day_n to_o that_o must_v the_o same_o be_v answer_v as_o afore_o that_o it_o be_v the_o use_n and_o improvement_n that_o the_o devil_n will_v choose_v to_o make_v of_o such_o scandal_n to_o prevent_v the_o abuse_n of_o god_n service_n by_o root_a out_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o as_o for_o particular_a solemnity_n of_o fast_v by_o the_o week_n or_o by_o the_o year_n we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o abstinence_n be_v not_o only_o the_o cure_n of_o that_o sensuality_n which_o surfeit_n breed_v but_o the_o most_o powerful_a mean_n to_o represent_v unto_o a_o man_n the_o whole_a condition_n of_o his_o soul_n towards_o god_n will_v a_o man_n desire_v to_o humble_v himself_o in_o the_o consideration_n of_o his_o offence_n let_v common_a sense_n be_v judge_n whether_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o full_a or_o fast_v to_o better_a purpose_n wherefore_o be_v subject_a to_o run_v into_o offence_n from_o time_n to_o time_n what_o more_o wholesome_a ordinance_n can_v the_o church_n have_v then_o to_o assemble_v from_o week_n to_o week_n to_o humble_v ourselves_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o to_o labour_v to_o divert_v his_o due_a wrath_n that_o it_o light_v not_o upon_o we_o in_o general_a or_o in_o particular_a and_o be_v subject_n nevertheless_o to_o heap_v wrath_n against_o ourselves_o by_o slight_v our_o continual_a humiliation_n and_o repentance_n what_o more_o solemn_a ordinance_n can_v reason_n devise_v then_o fast_v before_o festival_n then_o before_o the_o most_o solemn_a yearly_a festival_n the_o most_o solemn_a yearly_a fast_a by_o humiliation_n go_v before_o to_o estate_n we_o in_o the_o right_n of_o those_o blessing_n which_o then_o we_o celebrate_v our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n have_v say_v of_o his_o disciple_n when_o the_o bridegroom_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o among_o they_o then_o shall_v they_o fast_o in_o those_o day_n shall_v christian_n never_o fast_o but_o when_o public_a calamity_n or_o extraordinary_a occasion_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n call_v for_o it_o well_o may_v it_o be_v ask_v where_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o these_o word_n i_o speak_v not_o now_o of_o any_o difference_n of_o meat_n for_o conscience_n sake_n in_o that_o abstinence_n be_v not_o see_v in_o the_o consideration_n now_o in_o hand_n but_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o service_n of_o god_n upon_o these_o occasion_n which_o be_v appoint_v for_o humble_v of_o our_o soul_n in_o consideration_n of_o our_o offence_n common_a sense_n will_v not_o refuse_v that_o abstinence_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o purpose_n if_o it_o be_v say_v in_o this_o point_n as_o afore_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v abuse_v this_o ordinance_n to_o a_o sacrilegious_a opinion_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n have_v declare_v a_o just_a and_o true_a reason_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o ordinance_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v no_o worship_n of_o god_n but_o the_o opportunity_n and_o mean_n of_o his_o due_a and_o requisite_a service_n the_o answer_n must_v be_v as_o afore_o that_o it_o be_v the_o advantage_n which_o the_o devil_n will_v wish_v to_o make_v of_o such_o abuse_n to_o make_v they_o the_o pretence_n to_o root_v out_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o so_o to_o save_v the_o pain_n of_o reform_v it_o the_o last_o consideration_n which_o i_o refer_v to_o this_o head_n concern_v the_o frequent_a celebration_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o crown_n of_o public_a service_n and_o the_o most_o solemn_a and_o chief_a work_n of_o christian_a assembly_n and_o though_o for_o the_o particular_a time_n of_o communicate_v it_o be_v rather_o commend_v than_o enjoin_v yet_o the_o remembrance_n it_o import_v be_v so_o proper_a so_o particular_a to_o the_o profession_n we_o make_v that_o our_o assembly_n be_v never_o so_o like_o the_o assembly_n of_o christian_n as_o when_o it_o be_v celebrate_v and_o though_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n so_o to_o command_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o world_n as_o to_o be_v always_o dispose_v to_o communicate_v yet_o that_o in_o the_o general_a of_o the_o church_n there_o shall_v not_o always_o be_v person_n dispose_v to_o communicate_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v celebrate_v for_o those_o which_o be_v dispose_v to_o communicate_v be_v a_o inconvenience_n for_o which_o nothing_o but_o too_o much_o love_n of_o the_o world_n too_o much_o backwardness_n from_o spiritual_a duty_n can_v be_v allege_v for_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o retain_v the_o custom_n of_o celebrate_v day_n by_o day_n have_v turn_v the_o communion_n into_o a_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a the_o answer_n must_v be_v as_o afore_o that_o it_o be_v the_o use_n which_o the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n will_v choose_v to_o make_v of_o their_o abuse_n to_o persuade_v man_n that_o so_o long_o as_o private_a mass_n be_v abolish_v they_o be_v at_o freedom_n to_o be_v secure_a of_o the_o frequent_a celebration_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n if_o any_o man_n think_v that_o under_o this_o which_o have_v be_v say_v there_o be_v a_o intent_n to_o shoulder_n out_o preach_v by_o commend_v other_o cause_n of_o religious_a assembly_n he_o shall_v both_o wrong_v my_o meaning_n and_o mistake_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o cause_n he_o that_o will_v have_v man_n to_o preach_v more_o than_o they_o learn_v and_o to_o void_a those_o crudity_n in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v never_o digest_v in_o their_o study_n perhaps_o may_v have_v reason_n to_o think_v that_o where_o the_o stuff_n be_v slight_a there_o the_o large_a measure_n be_v due_a but_o beside_o the_o scandal_n such_o raw_a doctrine_n must_v needs_o breed_v he_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o bring_v a_o slight_a esteem_n upon_o that_o profession_n wherein_o god_n be_v serve_v no_o otherwise_o but_o he_o that_o will_v provide_v ability_n of_o man_n for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n shall_v find_v that_o these_o assembly_n on_o festival_n and_o fasting-day_n the_o occasion_n whereof_o be_v here_o commend_v shall_v minister_v opportunity_n of_o continual_a preach_v even_o beyond_o those_o of_o hear_v always_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n where_o man_n be_v able_a to_o support_v the_o respect_n and_o esteem_v of_o so_o great_a a_o work_n it_o be_v now_o time_n to_o put_v together_o the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o particular_n here_o touch_v derive_v it_o as_o near_o as_o can_v be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v thus_o write_v of_o the_o first_o disciple_n act_n two_o 42._o and_o they_o continue_v steadfast_o in_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n and_o communion_n and_o in_o break_v bread_n and_o prayer_n and_o vers_fw-la 46._o and_o day_n by_o day_n continue_v with_o one_o mind_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o break_v bread_n from_o house_n to_o house_n do_v eat_v their_o meat_n with_o gladness_n and_o singleness_n of_o heart_n again_o three_o 1._o now_o peter_n and_o john_n go_v up_o together_o into_o the_o temple_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o prayer_n be_v the_o nine_o hour_n that_o be_v three_o after_o noon_n the_o synagogue_n be_v institute_v for_o the_o moral_a and_o perpetual_a service_n of_o god_n by_o prayer_n and_o praise_v he_o and_o expound_v his_o word_n leave_v the_o figurative_a worship_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o the_o temple_n upon_o which_o nevertheless_o the_o circumstance_n of_o that_o moral_a service_n depend_v as_o have_v be_v observe_v out_o of_o r._n moses_n maimoni_n tephillah_n ubircath_n cohenim_n c._n l._n n._n 7._o and_o must_v be_v repeat_v here_o thus_o he_o deliver_v that_o correspondent_a to_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n morning_n and_o evening_n there_o be_v order_v among_o they_o and_o practise_v one_o service_n for_o the_o morning_n another_o for_o the_o evening_n that_o therefore_o call_v
allege_v elsewhere_o translate_v agapam_fw-la facere_fw-la in_o that_o which_o be_v extant_a missam_fw-la facere_fw-la which_o he_o say_v must_v not_o be_v hold_v without_o the_o bishop_n and_o that_o must_v be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o when_o justine_n and_o tertullian_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v frequent_v at_o meal_n we_o must_v needs_o understand_v it_o in_o the_o first_o place_n of_o those_o meal_n to_o which_o they_o assemble_v for_o the_o exercise_n of_o christian_a charity_n and_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n as_o we_o see_v in_o tertullian_n apol._n c._n 39_o where_o if_o we_o find_v nothing_o of_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o cassander_n reason_n because_o it_o be_v not_o his_o purpose_n to_o make_v know_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o unbeliever_n which_o may_v bring_v it_o into_o contempt_n among_o they_o plinie_n word_n allege_v seem_v to_o import_v that_o the_o christian_n of_o his_o time_n assemble_v twice_o on_o lord_n day_n before_o day_n and_o at_o night_n before_o day_n to_o praise_n christ_n as_o god_n and_o to_o tie_v themselves_o upon_o a_o sacrament_n or_o oath_n to_o make_v good_a what_o they_o profess_v i_o have_v not_o yet_o find_v that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o make_v any_o such_o formal_a oath_n to_o themselves_o and_o must_v think_v it_o strange_a that_o they_o shall_v renew_v it_o at_o all_o solemn_a assembly_n and_o therefore_o do_v believe_v that_o his_o meaning_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n we_o know_v be_v a_o obligation_n to_o such_o purpose_n at_o night_n when_o they_o meet_v to_o eat_v together_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v and_o so_o plinie_n word_n import_v the_o same_o that_o justines_n in_o which_o he_o describe_v to_o we_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n at_o solemn_a morning_n service_n and_o elsewhere_o at_o meal_n among_o which_o the_o feast_n of_o love_n have_v the_o first_o place_n and_o both_o of_o they_o the_o same_o that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n his_o meaning_n in_o the_o xi_o chapter_n be_v not_o to_o abrogate_v those_o feast_n of_o love_n but_o to_o take_v a_o course_n that_o they_o may_v be_v hold_v in_o common_a for_o the_o exercise_n of_o christian_a charity_n and_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n therefore_o if_o any_o man_n pretend_v the_o necessity_n of_o nature_n he_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o eat_v at_o home_n xi_o 34._o because_o it_o have_v appear_v that_o these_o assembly_n be_v hold_v towards_o night_n and_o that_o when_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v to_o entertain_v themselves_o than_o they_o assemble_v to_o this_o sober_a and_o christian_a refreshment_n but_o in_o this_o xiiii_o chapter_n he_o have_v touch_v all_o the_o part_n of_o public_a service_n at_o solemn_a assembly_n prayer_n the_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o read_n and_o expound_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o say_v vers_fw-la 16._o else_o when_o thou_o shall_v bless_v with_o the_o spirit_n how_o shall_v he_o that_o occupi_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a say_n amen_o at_o thy_o give_v of_o thanks_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o show_v that_o he_o refer_v to_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o particular_a and_o that_o thanksgiving_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v consecrate_v with_o to_o which_o purpose_n i_o have_v premise_v these_o probability_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v then_o celebrate_v at_o their_o morning_n assembly_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o rubric_n of_o our_o service_n which_o say_v upon_o the_o holy_a day_n if_o there_o be_v no_o communion_n shall_v be_v say_v with_o that_o which_o follow_v and_o more_o plain_a by_o the_o rubric_n of_o the_o first_o edition_n of_o edward_n vi_o after_o the_o exhortation_n which_o say_v in_o cathedral_n church_n or_o other_o place_n where_o there_o be_v daily_a communion_n and_o again_o and_o if_o upon_o the_o sunday_n or_o holy_a day_n the_o people_n be_v negligent_a to_o come_v to_o the_o communion_n that_o our_o reformer_n affect_v the_o frequentation_n of_o this_o service_n according_a to_o the_o primitive_a practice_n so_o far_o as_o they_o think_v it_o attainable_a and_o according_a to_o they_o calvine_n 4._o instit_fw-la xvii_o 43_o &_o 46._o roundly_o profess_v that_o it_o behove_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v at_o least_o once_o a_o week_n where_o let_v i_o have_v leave_n to_o say_v that_o it_o have_v be_v much_o more_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n to_o have_v labour_v in_o reduce_v this_o pious_a intention_n of_o our_o reformer_n into_o practice_n then_o to_o contend_v about_o say_v that_o part_n of_o the_o service_n which_o nevertheless_o as_o shall_v appear_v never_o proper_o belong_v to_o the_o celebration_n of_o that_o sacrament_n at_o the_o place_n appoint_v for_o the_o minister_a of_o it_o chap._n ix_o the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n to_o use_v ceremony_n in_o public_a service_n it_o be_v avow_v by_o the_o chief_a reformer_n of_o the_o respect_n of_o time_n and_o place_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o vesture_n and_o gesture_n caution_n in_o matter_n of_o ceremony_n the_o obligation_n of_o rule_n whereby_o they_o be_v determine_v of_o the_o rite_n and_o circumstance_n and_o ceremony_n of_o god_n service_n in_o public_a it_o concern_v to_o say_v something_o here_o where_o we_o be_v about_o the_o general_a order_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o so_o much_o have_v be_v say_v of_o it_o and_o to_o so_o good_a purpose_n that_o he_o that_o will_v come_v down_o to_o the_o particular_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v enforce_v to_o say_v over_o what_o have_v be_v say_v again_o my_o purpose_n be_v to_o discourse_v in_o few_o word_n the_o reason_n and_o ground_n upon_o which_o in_o general_a it_o be_v expedient_a that_o the_o form_n of_o public_a service_n shall_v be_v solemn_a and_o ceremonious_a according_a to_o the_o method_n hitherto_o use_v and_o that_o be_v this_o which_o i_o touch_v afore_o because_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n command_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v both_o in_o order_n and_o with_o comeliness_n and_o nothing_o can_v become_v the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o that_o which_o serve_v to_o stir_v up_o and_o to_o exercise_v the_o inward_a reverence_n of_o the_o heart_n in_o ourselves_o and_o to_o procure_v it_o in_o other_o what_o that_o be_v common_a reason_n must_v be_v judge_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n here_o therefore_o lie_v a_o appeal_n to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o all_o the_o world_n not_o to_o the_o particular_a reason_n of_o person_n interest_v in_o prejudice_n whether_o that_o inward_a reverence_n and_o devotion_n of_o the_o heart_n wherein_o the_o service_n of_o god_n consist_v the_o exercise_n and_o maintenance_n of_o it_o do_v not_o require_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o circumstance_n and_o rite_n of_o it_o solemn_a and_o ceremonious_a ask_v the_o world_n to_o what_o purpose_n the_o chief_a action_n of_o it_o be_v transact_v with_o so_o much_o observance_n in_o circumstance_n but_o to_o procure_v and_o maintain_v that_o respect_n which_o the_o public_a good_a require_v they_o shall_v possess_v in_o man_n mind_n in_o the_o state_n of_o prince_n in_o the_o court_n of_o judgement_n in_o military_a matter_n in_o the_o passage_n of_o all_o public_a matter_n of_o any_o consequence_n common_a sense_n be_v able_a to_o tell_v we_o what_o respect_n and_o observance_n be_v use_v and_o all_o reason_n allow_v the_o necessity_n of_o it_o for_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v convey_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o people_n that_o reverence_n in_o which_o the_o public_a good_a require_v all_o man_n to_o hold_v those_o power_n by_o which_o these_o great_a matter_n be_v manage_v which_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a shall_v make_v impression_n upon_o gross_a mind_n by_o conviction_n of_o reason_n be_v they_o not_o manage_v by_o their_o sense_n god_n have_v make_v christian_n though_o govern_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o grace_n as_o gross_a in_o their_o bodily_a sense_n and_o faculty_n of_o their_o mind_n as_o other_o man_n of_o like_a education_n be_v and_o it_o be_v a_o debt_n which_o the_o guide_n of_o the_o church_n owe_v to_o the_o wise_a and_o unwise_a of_o god_n people_n to_o conduct_v they_o in_o the_o way_n of_o godliness_n by_o mean_n proportionable_a to_o their_o faculty_n the_o outward_a form_n of_o public_a service_n avail_v much_o even_o with_o they_o who_o mind_n be_v least_o in_o tune_n to_o corroborate_v their_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n at_o the_o service_n of_o god_n by_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o but_o speak_v of_o they_o who_o mind_n be_v less_o withdraw_v from_o their_o sense_n how_o great_a impression_n shall_v the_o example_n of_o the_o world_n
practise_v the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o a_o orderly_a and_o reverend_a form_n make_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n that_o can_v receive_v it_o from_o their_o reason_n but_o from_o their_o sense_n this_o effect_n in_o thing_n of_o slight_a consequence_n in_o particular_a which_o nevertheless_o altogether_o amount_v to_o a_o considerable_a sum_n be_v better_a see_v by_o the_o gross_a in_o practice_n then_o convince_v by_o retail_n in_o dispute_n yet_o since_o the_o importunity_n of_o man_n have_v cause_v false_a reason_n to_o prevail_v with_o weak_a people_n it_o be_v requisite_a the_o true_a reason_n be_v plead_v lest_o it_o be_v think_v there_o be_v none_o such_o because_o not_o so_o fit_a to_o be_v plead_v the_o circumstance_n and_o ceremony_n of_o public_a service_n be_v indeed_o a_o kind_n of_o discipline_n and_o paedagogie_n whereby_o man_n subject_a to_o sense_n be_v guide_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o apparel_n of_o religion_n at_o the_o heart_n which_o some_o think_v like_o the_o sun_n most_o beautiful_a when_o it_o be_v most_o naked_a and_o so_o it_o be_v indeed_o do_v man_n consist_v of_o mind_n alone_o without_o body_n but_o as_o long_o as_o our_o bodily_a sense_n be_v manageable_a to_o our_o soul_n advantage_n the_o heat_n within_o will_v starve_v without_o this_o apparel_n without_o and_o therefore_o under_o better_a judgement_n i_o hold_v it_o requisite_a that_o the_o observance_n of_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n shall_v increase_v and_o become_v more_o solemn_a after_o the_o world_n be_v come_v into_o the_o church_n then_o under_o the_o persecute_v time_n of_o it_o persecution_n be_v like_o antiperistasis_n in_o nature_n in_o preserve_v order_n and_o reverence_n in_o the_o public_a office_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o respect_n of_o those_o guide_n that_o rule_v it_o but_o since_o the_o net_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v cast_v in_o the_o ocean_n and_o catch_v good_a and_o bad_a it_o be_v more_o requisite_a that_o all_o shall_v pass_v as_o under_o rule_n and_o observance_n so_o in_o the_o most_o reverend_a form_n that_o the_o coldness_n and_o indifference_n of_o the_o worse_a part_n appear_v not_o to_o debauch_v the_o good_a disposition_n of_o other_o though_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o early_o as_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n be_v able_a to_o inform_v we_o we_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v never_o without_o such_o outward_a observance_n as_o according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o time_n tend_v to_o maintain_v to_o witness_v the_o disposition_n of_o the_o heart_n answerable_a the_o apostle_n ordinance_n of_o pray_v and_o sing_v psalm_n man_n with_o head_n bare_a woman_n with_o head_n cover_v the_o salutation_n of_o peace_n so_o long_o practise_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o divers_a act_n of_o public_a service_n signify_v the_o overshadow_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o god_n hand_n stretch_v out_o to_o give_v the_o blessing_n for_o which_o prayer_n be_v make_v and_o without_o question_n derive_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v of_o this_o nature_n and_o it_o be_v think_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o put_v off_o the_o old_a man_n and_o put_v on_o the_o new_a col._n iii._o 9_o 10._o two_o 11._o of_o bury_v in_o baptism_n col._n two_o 12._o rom._n vi_fw-la 4._o of_o the_o unction_n of_o grace_n 1._o john_n two_o 20_o 27._o 1._o cor._n two_o 21._o allusion_n be_v make_v to_o some_o rite_n of_o ecclesiastical_a office_n use_v even_o at_o that_o time_n as_o for_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o name_v any_o of_o they_o so_o ancient_a in_o who_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v divers_a particular_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o the_o general_a reason_n hitherto_o declare_v have_v be_v better_o sift_v by_o the_o chief_a reformer_n philip._n loco_fw-la de_fw-la caerem_fw-la in_o eccl._n p._n 651._o paulus_n gravissimè_fw-la dicit_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la ordinem_fw-la tantùm_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la singularem_fw-la curam_fw-la ornandi_fw-la ordinis_fw-la requirit_fw-la quare_fw-la addit_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ut_fw-la videamus_fw-la quid_fw-la personas_fw-la loca_fw-la tempora_fw-la deceat_fw-la paul_n say_v with_o much_o gravity_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v with_o decency_n and_o in_o order_n he_o require_v not_o order_n alone_o but_o a_o singular_a care_n of_o set_v that_o order_n forth_o therefore_o he_o add_v decent_o that_o we_o consider_v what_o become_v person_n time_n and_o place_n this_o be_v it_o that_o i_o be_o now_o about_o that_o the_o order_n of_o thing_n do_v at_o public_a service_n be_v such_o as_o may_v set_v forth_o and_o insinuate_v the_o respect_n which_o those_o time_n those_o place_n those_o person_n require_v which_o calvine_n still_o set_v down_o in_o full_a term_n 4._o instit_fw-la x._o 28._o ut_fw-la in_o sacro_fw-la fidelium_fw-la caetu_fw-la decor_fw-la è_fw-la peragantur_fw-la omne_fw-la &_o quâ_fw-la convenit_fw-la dignitate_fw-la that_o in_o the_o holy_a assembly_n of_o the_o faithful_a all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o that_o worth_n and_o respect_n as_o befit_v afterward_o he_o set_v down_o as_o much_o as_o i_o have_v do_v when_o he_o say_v ac_fw-la decori_fw-la quidem_fw-la finis_fw-la est_fw-la partim_fw-la ut_fw-la dum_fw-la adhibentur_fw-la ritus_fw-la qui_fw-la venerationem_fw-la rebus_fw-la sacris_fw-la conciliant_fw-la talibus_fw-la adminiculis_fw-la ad_fw-la pietatem_fw-la excitemur_fw-la partim_fw-la etiam_fw-la ut_fw-la modestia_fw-la &_o gravitas_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la honestis_fw-la actionibus_fw-la spectari_fw-la debet_fw-la illic_fw-la maximè_fw-la eluceat_fw-la and_o indeed_o the_o end_n of_o comeliness_n be_v partly_o that_o use_v such_o rite_n as_o procure_v reverence_n to_o sacred_a thing_n we_o may_v be_v by_o such_o help_v excite_v to_o godliness_n partly_o that_o the_o modesty_n and_o gravity_n which_o in_o all_o action_n of_o respect_n ought_v to_o be_v attend_v may_v there_o especial_o appear_v again_o n._n 29._o sed_fw-la illud_fw-la nobis_fw-la decorum_n erit_fw-la quod_fw-la ità_fw-la sit_fw-la ad_fw-la sacrorum_fw-la mysteriorum_fw-la reverentiam_fw-la aptum_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la idoneum_fw-la ad_fw-la pietatem_fw-la exercitium_fw-la vel_fw-la saltem_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la ornatum_fw-la faciat_fw-la actioni_fw-la congruentem_fw-la neque_fw-la idipsum_fw-la sine_fw-la fructu_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la fideles_fw-la admoneat_fw-la quantâ_fw-la modestiâ_fw-la religione_fw-la observantiâ_fw-la sacra_fw-la tractare_fw-la debeant_fw-la but_o that_o shall_v be_v count_v decent_a with_o we_o that_o shall_v so_o fit_v the_o reverence_n of_o holy_a mystery_n as_o may_v be_v a_o competent_a exercise_n unto_o godliness_n or_o which_o at_o least_o may_v conduce_v to_o ornament_n suitable_a to_o the_o action_n and_o that_o not_o without_o benefit_n but_o to_o put_v the_o faithful_a in_o mind_n with_o how_o much_o modesty_n and_o religious_a observance_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v conversant_a in_o sacred_a action_n what_o this_o in_o general_n import_v be_v that_o which_o i_o desire_v in_o the_o particular_a head_n time_n and_o place_n be_v no_o way_n sanctify_v otherwise_o then_o as_o they_o be_v depute_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n matth._n xxiii_o 18._o which_o be_v the_o great_a the_o sacrifice_n or_o the_o altar_n that_o sanctifi_v it_o point_fw-fr out_o to_o we_o a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n in_o this_o particular_a for_o as_o s._n hierome_n say_v afore_o that_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n proper_a to_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n at_o all_o time_n that_o all_o day_n be_v equal_a of_o themselves_o no_o difference_n between_o they_o but_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o assembly_n of_o christian_n upon_o they_o and_o the_o work_n of_o those_o assembly_n so_o be_v it_o to_o be_v say_v with_o truth_n concern_v place_n to_o make_v it_o a_o general_a observation_n and_o a_o true_a one_o that_o under_o the_o law_n the_o time_n and_o the_o place_v sanctify_v the_o service_n confine_v to_o it_o but_o under_o the_o gospel_n the_o service_n require_v sanctifi_v the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o it_o for_o example_n the_o passeover_n on_o the_o due_a time_n be_v holy_a on_o another_o time_n have_v be_v abominable_a dwelling_v in_o tabernacle_n command_v on_o such_o a_o day_n of_o such_o a_o month_n use_v otherwise_o no_o part_n of_o god_n service_n but_o sacrilege_n in_o usurp_v it_o the_o sacrifice_n whereof_o our_o lord_n speak_v holy_a upon_o the_o altar_n otherwhere_o abominable_a on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o service_n of_o christian_n be_v good_a by_o nature_n and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n at_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n have_v a_o special_a promise_n of_o god_n from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o assembly_n in_o it_o which_o because_o they_o can_v
god_n of_o themselves_o without_o respect_n of_o advance_v that_o service_n which_o he_o require_v last_o because_o it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o order_n as_o well_o as_o comeliness_n be_v the_o rule_n to_o direct_v the_o form_n of_o god_n public_a service_n and_o because_o without_o order_n nothing_o become_v it_o though_o with_o order_n apt_a to_o become_v it_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o those_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o public_a order_n enforce_v that_o be_v which_o be_v either_o enjoin_v by_o law_n or_o practise_v by_o custom_n which_o it_o allow_v as_o for_o the_o voluntary_a observation_n of_o particular_a person_n they_o be_v by_o their_o nature_n subject_a to_o abuse_v as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o all_o reason_n show_v have_v their_o beginning_n from_o the_o well-meant_a devotion_n of_o private_a person_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o they_o may_v prove_v a_o just_a subject_n of_o that_o offence_n to_o the_o weak_a which_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v which_o those_o that_o be_v practise_v upon_o public_a order_n declare_v the_o due_a meaning_n of_o they_o can_v as_o my_o purpose_n be_v now_o to_o declare_v because_o it_o be_v a_o objection_n which_o if_o it_o take_v place_n as_o some_o think_v must_v needs_o overthrow_v the_o most_o part_n of_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v to_o the_o order_n and_o circumstance_n of_o public_a service_n it_o be_v to_o be_v know_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o jewish_a christian_n under_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o who_o both_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n especial_o of_o s._n paul_n be_v to_o be_v value_v for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n order_v act_v xv_o 20._o that_o those_o which_o be_v convert_v from_o the_o gentile_n shall_v abstain_v from_o thing_n die_v in_o the_o blood_n and_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n s._n paul_n circumcise_v timotheus_n xuj_o 3._o purify_v himself_o according_a to_o the_o law_n xxi_o 26._o in_o respect_n to_o the_o same_o sort_n he_o be_v bold_a to_o say_v rom._n twelve_o 6._o he_o that_o regard_v a_o day_n regard_v it_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o that_o regard_v not_o a_o day_n regard_v it_o not_o to_o the_o lord_n he_o that_o eat_v eat_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o he_o give_v god_n thanks_o and_o he_o that_o eat_v not_o to_o the_o lord_n he_o eat_v not_o and_o give_v god_n thank_v and_o that_o it_o seem_v upon_o the_o consideration_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o next_o word_n because_o though_o not_o without_o blame_n for_o the_o ignorance_n of_o their_o freedom_n yet_o live_v and_o die_v to_o the_o lord_n they_o have_v a_o pious_a intention_n in_o general_a to_o excuse_v their_o defect_n in_o particular_a but_o in_o regard_n to_o the_o other_o sort_n it_o be_v the_o same_o apostle_n that_o say_v gal._n iiii_o 10_o 11._o you_o observe_v day_n and_o month_n and_o time_n and_o year_n i_o be_o afraid_a of_o you_o lest_o i_o have_v bestow_v upon_o you_o labour_n in_o vain_a and_o coloss_n two_o 16._o let_v no_o man_n therefore_o judge_v you_o in_o meat_n or_o drink_n or_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o feast_n or_o new-moon_n or_o sabbath_n express_v further_o what_o he_o mean_v when_o he_o say_v let_v no_o man_n judge_v you_o vers_n 5._o beware_v lest_o any_o man_n spoil_v you_o and_z vers_n 20._o why_o as_o live_v in_o the_o world_n be_v you_o subject_n to_o ordinance_n touch_v not_o taste_v not_o handle_v not_o and_o to_o titus_n i_o 10_o there_o be_v many_o unruly_a and_o vain_a talker_n and_o deceiver_n especial_o they_o of_o the_o circumcision_n who_o mouth_n must_v be_v stop_v and_o wherein_o he_o express_v vers_fw-la 15._o unto_o the_o clean_a all_o thing_n be_v clean_a show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v tolerate_v but_o oppose_v in_o that_o which_o they_o teach_v of_o difference_n of_o time_n and_o meat_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n according_a to_o his_o practice_n in_o titus_n whereof_o gal._n two_o 34._o but_o neither_o titus_n who_o be_v with_o i_o be_v a_o greek_a be_v compel_v to_o be_v circumcise_v and_o that_o because_o of_o false_a brethren_n sly_o foist_v in_o that_o come_v in_o privy_o to_o spy_v out_o our_o freedom_n which_o we_o have_v in_o christ_n jesus_n that_o they_o may_v bring_v we_o into_o bondage_n this_o difference_n in_o the_o apostle_n practice_n and_o doctrine_n must_v needs_o proceed_v from_o the_o difference_n of_o person_n they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o the_o one_o like_o man_n that_o be_v new_o come_v out_o of_o the_o dark_a can_v not_o look_v right_a upon_o the_o light_n of_o that_o freedom_n which_o the_o gospel_n estate_v and_o not_o satisfy_v of_o the_o right_n of_o christian_n for_o their_o particular_a practice_n make_v a_o conscience_n of_o day_n and_o meat_n according_a to_o the_o law_n the_o other_o renounce_v their_o freedom_n and_o in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o servitude_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o dogmatise_v and_o maintain_v the_o necessity_n of_o such_o observation_n upon_o those_o desperate_a consequence_n which_o the_o apostle_n express_v those_o be_v the_o weak_a and_o these_o the_o strong_a according_a to_o the_o apostle_n because_o though_o for_o reason_n weak_a for_o a_o false_a opinion_n be_v a_o further_a weakness_n than_o a_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n yet_o for_o will_n most_o resolute_a to_o stand_v in_o it_o those_o in_o action_n doubtful_a these_o in_o opinion_n erroneous_a these_o be_v the_o man_n who_o the_o apostle_n charge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o love_n not_o to_o scandalize_v show_v that_o in_o two_o thing_n it_o may_v be_v do_v first_o rom._n fourteen_o 15._o if_o thy_o brother_n be_v grieve_v with_o thy_o meat_n than_o walk_v thou_o not_o charitable_o destroy_v not_o he_o with_o thy_o meat_n for_o who_o christ_n die_v which_o origen_n conceive_v to_o point_v at_o such_o as_o take_v distaste_n at_o the_o profession_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o to_o forsake_v it_o upon_o occasion_n of_o such_o slight_a offence_n and_o the_o vehemence_n of_o those_o term_n which_o the_o apostle_n use_v seem_v to_o import_v no_o less_o but_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n vers_fw-la 15._o if_o thy_o brother_n be_v grieve_v with_o thy_o meat_n and_z vers_n 10._o why_o judge_v thou_o thy_o brother_n why_o set_v thou_o thy_o brother_n at_o nought_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o discouragement_n of_o these_o weak_a one_o be_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n a_o degree_n of_o this_o offence_n but_o there_o be_v another_o express_v vers_fw-la 22_o 23._o that_o whereas_o it_o behove_v all_o man_n to_o be_v resolve_v of_o what_o they_o do_v that_o it_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n vers_fw-la 5._o by_o the_o indiscreet_a example_n of_o one_o that_o understand_v his_o own_o freedom_n he_o that_o do_v not_o may_v be_v move_v to_o use_v it_o with_o a_o doubtful_a conscience_n which_o the_o apostle_n declare_v to_o be_v sin_n by_o the_o way_n that_o offence_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n write_v 1._o cor._n viij_o 9_o x._o 27._o be_v of_o another_o nature_n not_o pertinent_a to_o this_o purpose_n for_o here_o the_o offence_n be_v a_o example_n that_o move_v a_o man_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v lawful_a with_o a_o doubtful_a conscience_n there_o it_o be_v a_o example_n which_o move_v a_o man_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v unlawful_a with_o a_o erroneous_a conscience_n that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o the_o example_n of_o he_o that_o have_v knowledge_n eat_v that_o which_o be_v sacrifice_v unto_o idol_n without_o difference_n move_v the_o simple_a to_o participate_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o idol_n by_o feast_v on_o their_o sacrifice_n thus_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o offence_n be_v give_v to_o the_o weak_a by_o the_o order_n of_o this_o church_n when_o those_o that_o be_v not_o satisfy_v in_o the_o thing_n order_v either_o take_v distaste_n thereupon_o at_o the_o church_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o it_o or_o be_v move_v by_o example_n to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v order_v with_o a_o doubtful_a conscience_n where_o it_o must_v be_v except_v that_o no_o man_n can_v use_v this_o argument_n of_o scandal_n to_o the_o weak_a but_o he_o must_v acknowledge_v the_o thing_n order_v to_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o weak_a who_o the_o apostle_n forbid_v to_o offend_v be_v he_o that_o be_v not_o persuade_v of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a indeed_o beside_o he_o that_o pretend_v the_o scandal_n of_o the_o weak_a by_o example_n move_v to_o proceed_v upon_o a_o doubtful_a conscience_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o that_o kind_n of_o offence_n for_o in_o that_o he_o complain_v he_o show_v he_o be_v aware_a enough_o of_o the_o danger_n and_o it_o be_v without_o the_o
compass_n of_o common_a sense_n to_o imagine_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v stumble_v in_o follow_v the_o example_n against_o which_o he_o profess_v in_o fine_a the_o opposition_n make_v to_o public_a order_n and_o that_o which_o it_o injoyn_v be_v evidence_n enough_o that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o weak_a but_o the_o strong_a not_o the_o doubtful_a but_o the_o erroneous_a weak_a in_o reason_n but_o strong_a in_o will_n or_o as_o it_o be_v once_o well_o say_v headstrong_a in_o refuse_v without_o reason_n what_o order_n prescribe_v not_o those_o who_o the_o apostle_n charge_v to_o forbear_v but_o those_o who_o he_o forbear_v not_o a_o moment_n gal._n two_o 5._o who_o he_o charge_v the_o colossian_n and_o titus_n not_o to_o forbear_v that_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o the_o matter_n be_v light_a wherein_o their_o offence_n stick_v but_o the_o consequence_n which_o opposition_n draw_v involve_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o be_v the_o thing_n slight_a which_o we_o stick_v at_o but_o public_a order_n which_o depend_v upon_o the_o right_n of_o prescribe_v and_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n intend_v in_o the_o particular_n deserve_v not_o to_o be_v abandon_v for_o a_o unjust_a offence_n true_a it_o be_v that_o a_o private_a person_n that_o will_v be_v charitable_a must_v forbear_v the_o use_n of_o his_o freedom_n which_o no_o rule_n confine_v when_o he_o see_v it_o will_v be_v offence_n to_o the_o weak_a if_o he_o forbear_v it_o not_o he_o give_v just_a offence_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o under_o the_o countenance_n and_o wing_n of_o the_o erroneous_a and_o strong_a there_o walk_v divers_a of_o those_o doubtful_a and_o weak_a to_o who_o respect_n be_v to_o be_v have_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n but_o if_o the_o question_n thereupon_o be_v make_v whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o church_n to_o order_n such_o thing_n as_o shall_v seem_v to_o advantage_v the_o form_n the_o order_n the_o rite_n of_o divine_a service_n whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o those_o who_o it_o concern_v to_o observe_v and_o exact_v the_o same_o in_o case_n there_o may_v be_v doubtful_a conscience_n that_o may_v take_v offence_n the_o answer_n will_v be_v yes_o even_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n because_o otherwise_o the_o public_a order_n which_o he_o recommend_v can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v preserve_v in_o the_o church_n since_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a so_o to_o order_v thing_n of_o this_o nature_n as_o to_o leave_v no_o possible_a doubt_n in_o any_o conscience_n may_v not_o those_o of_o the_o gentile_n who_o the_o apostle_n enjoin_v to_o forbear_v thing_n die_v in_o their_o blood_n and_o offer_v to_o idol_n have_v take_v offence_n because_o they_o be_v confine_v in_o the_o just_a use_n of_o their_o freedom_n or_o the_o corinthian_n that_o s._n paul_n suffer_v not_o their_o woman_n to_o sit_v with_o bare_a face_n at_o public_a service_n as_o the_o virgin_n of_o tertullia_n time_n profess_v themselves_o scandalize_v at_o those_o of_o their_o rank_n that_o practise_v it_o suppose_v the_o church_n can_v say_v as_o the_o apostle_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o other_o case_n proceed_v upon_o no_o other_o reason_n then_o such_o as_o the_o church_n must_v now_o use_v in_o like_a case_n and_o i_o suppose_v the_o precedent_n inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n authorize_v the_o church_n to_o proceed_v in_o like_a matter_n though_o not_o pretend_v immediate_a inspiration_n last_o of_o all_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o among_o the_o erroneous_a of_o they_o that_o do_v judaize_v under_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v also_o of_o the_o doubtful_a and_o weak_a lead_v away_o with_o their_o pretence_n and_o yet_o we_o see_v the_o apostle_n forbear_v they_o not_o a_o moment_n in_o respect_n to_o the_o weak_a all_o this_o contain_v no_o more_o inconvenience_n than_o this_o that_o whereas_o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o endeavour_v themselves_o to_o satisfy_v and_o overcome_v such_o doubt_n of_o their_o conscience_n the_o apostle_n opposition_n redouble_v a_o new_a obligation_n to_o do_v it_o lest_o they_o offend_v this_o ministry_n if_o they_o do_v it_o not_o so_o do_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n add_v a_o new_a obligation_n of_o resolve_v doubtful_a conscience_n for_o fear_v of_o offend_v the_o public_a order_n which_o it_o settle_v and_o in_o all_o this_o i_o suppose_v there_o be_v no_o just_a offence_n for_o as_o there_o be_v always_o mean_v in_o the_o church_n with_o satisfaction_n to_o overcome_v doubt_n of_o conscience_n so_o be_v there_o no_o mean_n to_o procure_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o doubt_n of_o conscience_n in_o the_o church_n so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v unperfect_a christian_n in_o it_o but_o he_o who_o it_o concern_v to_o observe_v or_o exact_v public_a order_n must_v not_o give_v just_a offence_n to_o public_a order_n and_o all_o that_o go_v by_o it_o by_o neglect_v it_o for_o fear_v of_o give_v unjust_a offence_n to_o private_a person_n by_o observe_v or_o exact_v it_o chap._n x._o what_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v touch_v our_o service_n the_o service_n of_o hearer_n and_o believer_n confession_n of_o sin_n whether_o of_o old_a the_o begin_n of_o service_n the_o ancient_a order_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n the_o mass_n contain_v a_o abridgement_n of_o it_o several_a manner_n of_o sing_a psalm_n purpose_v of_o lesson_n the_o place_n of_o the_o sermon_n dismission_n of_o hearer_n original_a of_o litany_n prayer_n indict_v by_o the_o deacon_n the_o thanksgiving_n from_o whence_o the_o sacrament_n be_v call_v the_o eucharist_n prayer_n which_o it_o be_v always_o celebrate_v with_o prayer_n for_o all_o the_o church_n at_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n the_o residue_n of_o that_o service_n the_o charge_n of_o the_o mass_n on_o our_o service_n extent_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o wherein_o in_o consist_v of_o confession_n of_o sin_n and_o absolution_n at_o the_o beginning_n our_o order_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o collect_v the_o sermon_n part_n of_o our_o service_n of_o the_o communion-service_n and_o appertenance_n of_o it_o be_v now_o to_o compare_v the_o form_n of_o service_n which_o we_o use_v with_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o derive_v both_o from_o the_o practice_n point_v out_o to_o we_o in_o those_o particular_n which_o be_v remember_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o be_o to_o profess_v at_o the_o beginning_n that_o my_o purpose_n be_v not_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o the_o particular_n of_o word_n or_o conception_n wherein_o it_o be_v couch_v it_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o reduce_v the_o main_a substance_n and_o order_n of_o it_o to_o that_o which_o we_o find_v practise_v under_o the_o apostle_n my_o business_n therefore_o be_v to_o describe_v the_o most_o ancient_a and_o general_a form_n of_o that_o solemn_a service_n which_o be_v use_v when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v not_o out_o of_o the_o liturgy_n extant_a alone_o but_o out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o elder_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n concur_v for_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o from_o hence_o be_v derive_v and_o herein_o be_v contain_v first_o the_o order_n of_o daily_a morning_n and_o evening_n service_n than_o the_o litany_n appoint_v beside_o for_o lords-daye_n wednesday_n and_o friday_n and_o last_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v all_o or_o almost_o all_o that_o which_o this_o discourse_n intend_v to_o comprise_v in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v to_o be_v know_v that_o from_o the_o first_o time_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v always_o two_o part_n of_o public_a service_n at_o the_o one_o all_o person_n may_v be_v present_a though_o not_o christian_n till_o the_o sermon_n be_v do_v the_o church-doore_n be_v open_a and_o free_a but_o when_o they_o go_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n than_o all_o hearer_n or_o catechumeni_fw-la that_o be_v those_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o faith_n but_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o admit_v to_o baptism_n all_o that_o be_v under_o penance_n all_o possess_v with_o unclean_a spirit_n be_v dismiss_v and_o shut_v out_o none_o suffer_v to_o be_v present_a but_o those_o that_o be_v admit_v to_o communicate_v of_o these_o two_o part_n we_o have_v sufficient_a remembrance_n in_o justine_n martyr_n the_o most_o ancient_a of_o church-writer_n that_o remain_v unquestionable_a his_o word_n be_v these_o apol._n two_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o many_o as_o be_v persuade_v and_o believe_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v teach_v and_o say_v of_o we_o and_o undertake_v to_o be_v able_a so_o to_o live_v be_v teach_v to_o pray_v and_o desire_v of_o god_n with_o fast_v forgiveness_n of_o forego_v sin_n we_o also_o pray_v and_o fast_v with_o they_o for_o
public_a service_n in_o the_o church_n for_o reason_n proper_a to_o that_o time_n the_o example_n of_o s._n basils_n monk_n and_o their_o morning_n service_n describe_v by_o he_o ep._n lxiii_o seem_v more_o pertinent_a to_o be_v make_v the_o precedent_n of_o we_o his_o word_n be_v these_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o people_n with_o we_o rise_v betimes_o after_o night_n to_o the_o house_n of_o prayer_n and_o make_v confession_n to_o god_n with_o pain_n and_o tribulation_n and_o distress_n of_o tear_n at_o length_n rise_v from_o prayer_n fall_v to_o sing_v psalm_n for_o here_o he_o speak_v of_o confession_n at_o morning_n service_n as_o also_o that_o confession_n of_o sin_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o breviary_n howsoever_o scandalous_a for_o the_o stuff_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v use_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n with_o we_o and_o that_o of_o other_o reform_a church_n for_o a_o preparation_n and_o entrance_n to_o morning_n service_n now_o because_o it_o have_v be_v show_v afore_o that_o this_o solemn_a service_n of_o god_n consist_v of_o psalm_n of_o god_n praise_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o expound_v it_o of_o common_a prayer_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o euchrist_n that_o which_o remain_v here_o to_o be_v declare_v be_v this_o in_o what_o form_n and_o order_n these_o material_n be_v practise_v according_a to_o the_o elder_a and_o most_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o discern_v the_o order_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n be_v this_o according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n two_o 57_o have_v reckon_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v read_v in_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o two_o lesson_n be_v read_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n let_v some_o other_o sing_v the_o psalm_n of_o david_n and_o let_v the_o people_n answer_v the_o acrostiche_n after_o that_o let_v our_o act_n be_v read_v and_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n our_o workfellow_n which_o he_o send_v to_o the_o church_n by_o suggestion_n of_o the_o h._n ghost_n and_o after_o all_o this_o let_v a_o deacon_n or_o a_o presbyter_n read_v the_o gospel_n the_o 17._o canon_n of_o laodicea_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o psalm_n shall_v not_o be_v continue_v in_o assembly_n but_o a_o lesson_n to_o be_v interpose_v in_o the_o midst_n after_o every_o psalm_n this_o be_v order_v say_v balsamon_n to_o take_v off_o the_o weariness_n of_o the_o people_n at_o these_o office_n by_o this_o mixture_n he_o that_o call_v himself_o dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n eccl._n hierar_n c._n v._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v return_v back_o to_o the_o divine_a altar_n he_o begin_v the_o holy_a melody_n of_o the_o psalm_n all_o rank_n of_o the_o church_n sing_v with_o he_o those_o holy_a psalm_n after_o follow_v in_o consequence_n the_o read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o the_o minister_n in_o this_o form_n which_o he_o describe_v there_o be_v no_o interlace_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n but_o the_o psalm_n first_o and_o afterward_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n and_o their_o custom_n we_o may_v presume_v from_o s._n augustine_n his_o sermon_n make_v divers_a time_n mention_v of_o a_o lesson_n first_o out_o of_o the_o prophet_n than_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n with_o a_o psalm_n or_o psalm_n between_o they_o and_o in_o his_o sermon_n he_o expound_v they_o all_o sometime_o in_o the_o mass_n itself_o there_o remain_v something_o of_o this_o custom_n as_o brief_a and_o short_a as_o they_o have_v make_v it_o to_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o form_n describe_v afore_o in_o part_n out_o of_o the_o constitution_n and_o for_o the_o rest_n to_o be_v describe_v it_o be_v strange_a to_o see_v to_o what_o a_o small_a model_n they_o have_v reduce_v it_o whether_o it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v frame_v for_o those_o time_n and_o place_n where_o morning_n service_n be_v use_v beside_o for_o which_o reason_n they_o think_v good_a to_o abridge_v it_o retain_v nevertheless_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o public_a service_n or_o whether_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n of_o multiply_v private_a mass_n it_o be_v so_o make_v on_o purpose_n for_o speed_n or_o whether_o so_o it_o be_v always_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v those_o copy_n which_o they_o give_v we_o of_o the_o ambrosian_a service_n and_o that_o of_o the_o mosarabe_n or_o spanish_a to_o be_v of_o any_o great_a time_n indeed_o the_o order_n of_o lesson_n say_v to_o be_v compose_v by_o s._n hierome_n &_o of_o antiphones_n by_o s._n gregory_n and_o other_o form_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v all_o very_a short_a this_o notwithstanding_o in_o the_o introit_n we_o see_v the_o trace_n of_o that_o sing_n of_o psalm_n in_o the_o beginning_n of_o which_o dionysius_n and_o the_o gradual_a as_o they_o call_v it_o which_o be_v the_o shred_n of_o a_o psalm_n between_o the_o epistle_n and_o the_o gospel_n be_v in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o that_o psalm_n between_o those_o lesson_n whereof_o s._n augustine_n speak_v in_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o ambrosian_a service_n for_o christmas_n day_n which_o we_o have_v out_o of_o the_o missal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n there_o be_v first_o a_o lesson_n out_o of_o the_o prophet_n a_o second_o out_o of_o the_o epistle_n and_o the_o last_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n with_o versicle_n of_o psalm_n or_o hymn_n or_o antiphones_n between_o each_o here_o as_o concern_v the_o psalm_n in_o the_o church_n let_v i_o have_v leave_n to_o resume_v that_o which_o be_v prove_v afore_o out_o of_o s._n paul_n that_o the_o custom_n be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o to_o sing_v they_o that_o the_o whole_a congregation_n may_v bear_v a_o part_n in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n which_o the_o book_n of_o psalm_n from_o time_n to_o time_n invit_v they_o to_o do_v according_o in_o the_o pretend_a dionysius_n the_o bishop_n begin_v the_o psalm_n but_o all_o the_o rank_n proceed_v to_o join_v in_o the_o same_o but_o in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o people_n be_v to_o answer_v only_o the_o acrostich_n what_o those_o be_v i_o can_v better_v conjecture_n then_o by_o the_o word_n of_o philo_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la contempl._n where_o he_o relate_v the_o fashion_n of_o those_o hymn_n which_o the_o essenes_n by_o alexandria_n in_o egypt_n use_v at_o their_o common_a feast_n which_o he_o say_v be_v sing_v first_o by_o the_o chief_a afterward_o by_o the_o rest_n in_o their_o order_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o hear_n with_o much_o silence_n but_o when_o the_o end_n and_o burden_n of_o the_o hymn_n be_v to_o be_v sing_v for_o they_o all_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n sing_v out_o some_o such_o thing_n i_o suppose_v it_o be_v which_o in_o the_o constitution_n there_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o end_n verse_n of_o the_o psalm_n as_o the_o gloria_fw-la patri_fw-la among_o we_o know_v to_o the_o people_n at_o those_o time_n when_o for_o some_o inconvenience_n find_v of_o indecorum_n in_o perform_v this_o office_n the_o whole_a congregation_n join_v no_o more_o in_o the_o psalm_n for_o though_o in_o the_o custom_n of_o those_o church_n which_o dionysius_n describe_v the_o people_n join_v in_o they_o at_o those_o time_n whereof_o he_o speak_v &_o though_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o those_o constitution_n &_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o the_o pretend_a dionysius_n yet_o by_o they_o it_o appear_v that_o when_o the_o constitution_n direct_v the_o people_n to_o join_v in_o the_o close_n and_o when_o that_o council_n order_v can._n 15._o that_o no_o more_o than_o the_o canonical_a singer_n that_o be_v enrol_v in_o the_o list_n of_o the_o church_n that_o go_v up_o into_o the_o desk_n &_o sing_v out_o of_o the_o parchmine_n shall_v sing_v in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v by_o that_o time_n and_o in_o those_o place_n of_o the_o church_n inconvenience_n find_v in_o the_o congregation_n join_v in_o it_o for_o which_o cause_n it_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o church-singer_n another_o course_n there_o be_v much_o use_v in_o divers_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o sing_v the_o psalm_n by_o antiphones_n of_o which_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v requisite_a here_o to_o repeat_v what_o be_v deliver_v of_o the_o first_o use_n of_o it_o in_o the_o east_n under_o ignatius_n the_o come_n of_o it_o into_o the_o west_n under_o s._n ambrose_n the_o relation_n of_o s._n basil_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o his_o monk_n epist_n lxiii_o the_o order_n of_o pope_n celestine_n for_o the_o psalm_n to_o be_v sing_v before_o the_o eucharist_n by_o way_n of_o antiphones_n it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o take_v notice_n here_o
that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o way_n that_o be_v put_v in_o use_n to_o the_o purpose_n that_o the_o congregation_n may_v join_v in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n with_o most_o comeliness_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o apostle_n time_n of_o the_o lesson_n of_o the_o scripture_n it_o must_v further_o be_v observe_v here_o that_o the_o ancient_n and_o primitive_a order_n of_o the_o church_n seem_v to_o have_v intend_v they_o so_o large_a that_o by_o hear_v they_o read_v in_o the_o church_n they_o may_v become_v familiar_a even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a of_o the_o people_n as_o josephus_n say_v afore_o that_o the_o jew_n by_o hear_v moses_n read_v in_o the_o synagogue_n become_v as_o perfect_v in_o their_o law_n as_o a_o man_n be_v in_o tell_v his_o own_o name_n whereas_o among_o other_o nation_n the_o simple_a never_o attain_v to_o know_v their_o own_o law_n for_o you_o see_v how_o many_o lesson_n be_v direct_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n two_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n out_o of_o the_o act_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n last_o of_o all_o according_o he_o reckon_v in_o particular_a the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n as_o do_v also_o the_o say_a council_n of_o laodicea_n in_o the_o last_o canon_n upon_o this_o occasion_n repeat_v the_o list_n of_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n and_o dionysius_n expound_v the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n describe_v by_o he_o afore_o reckon_v the_o subject_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a book_n in_o the_o scripture_n which_o he_o say_v be_v read_v after_o the_o psalm_n to_o enlarge_v with_o more_o ample_a declaration_n &_o example_n those_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o psalm_n be_v but_o dark_o and_o in_o brief_a point_a at_o all_o which_o i_o suppose_v intimate_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o than_o those_o short_a lesson_n pick_v out_o of_o some_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o well_o for_o the_o roman_a missal_n as_o other_o liturgy_n extant_a in_o that_o which_o be_v entitle_v to_o s._n james_n there_o be_v a_o remarkable_a rubric_n after_o the_o angelical_a hymn_n and_o the_o prayer_n that_o follow_v it_o which_o say_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o be_v read_v very_o large_o the_o holy_a oracle_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v declare_v that_o be_v the_o gospel_n be_v read_v for_o hereby_o he_o give_v we_o suspicion_n enough_o to_o presume_v that_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v large_a at_o the_o first_o then_o afterward_o it_o become_v when_o in_o the_o decline_a &_o degenerate_v time_n of_o the_o church_n the_o increase_n of_o sensible_a ceremony_n and_o observance_n begin_v to_o crowd_v out_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o reasonable_a service_n of_o god_n for_o so_o there_o be_v cause_n to_o conceive_v by_o that_o of_o the_o sermon_n whereof_o it_o follow_v immediate_o there_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v after_o the_o lesson_n be_v read_v and_o the_o sermon_n be_v do_v for_o in_o justine_n martyr_n description_n of_o the_o service_n in_o his_o time_n after_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n follow_v immediate_o the_o sermon_n to_o expound_v they_o and_o to_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n tertullian_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o order_n or_o place_n which_o the_o sermon_n have_v in_o the_o service_n but_o remember_v it_o as_o a_o principal_a part_n of_o it_o in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o place_n be_v produce_v afore_o wherein_o mention_n be_v make_v after_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o presbyter_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n one_o after_o another_o and_o the_o bishop_n after_o they_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o 18._o canon_n of_o laodicea_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o after_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o bishop_n first_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o hearer_n must_v be_v make_v apart_o in_o fine_a it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o order_n of_o all_o liturgy_n extant_a in_o which_o be_v describe_v the_o order_n of_o the_o solemn_a service_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v when_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v first_o that_o of_o all_o lesson_n of_o the_o scripture_n those_o out_o of_o the_o gospel_n be_v read_v in_o the_o last_o place_n as_o it_o be_v express_v in_o s._n augustine_n allege_v before_o in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o divers_a other_o that_o may_v be_v produce_v be_v it_o questionable_a then_o that_o after_o the_o read_n of_o the_o gospel_n follow_v the_o sermon_n for_o the_o exposition_n of_o it_o or_o some_o other_o of_o the_o lesson_n and_o yet_o in_o dionysius_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o the_o sermon_n either_o in_o the_o description_n he_o make_v of_o the_o service_n or_o in_o the_o exposition_n wherein_o he_o render_v a_o reason_n of_o it_o but_o immediate_o after_o the_o read_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o last_o in_o order_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_a and_o the_o like_a be_v dismiss_v and_o then_o follow_v the_o creed_n which_o to_o i_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o author_n time_n and_o that_o when_o he_o write_v the_o sermon_n in_o some_o place_n begin_v to_o be_v disuse_v and_o also_o because_o he_o mention_n the_o creed_n in_o the_o order_n of_o public_a service_n of_o which_o in_o justine_n tertullian_n the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n wherein_o almost_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o public_a service_n be_v order_v in_o fine_a whereof_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a description_n of_o the_o service_n there_o be_v no_o remembrance_n it_o appear_v afore_o by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n and_o so_o it_o do_v by_o dionysius_n that_o it_o be_v pronounce_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o use_n of_o it_o by_o the_o whole_a congregation_n for_o the_o first_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n every_o woman_n pray_v or_o prophesy_v of_o say_v or_o sing_v the_o creed_n and_o the_o second_o say_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o catholic_n hymn_n be_v acknowledge_v before_o by_o all_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v then_o the_o order_n of_o that_o former_a part_n of_o public_a service_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n be_v to_o be_v present_a at_o to_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o profit_v in_o it_o so_o as_o to_o be_v think_v fit_a for_o baptism_n and_o for_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o latin_a mass_n aswell_o as_o all_o other_o liturgy_n extant_a though_o reduce_v to_o so_o small_a a_o model_n as_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o shortness_n of_o the_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n and_o leave_v out_o the_o sermon_n always_o principal_a ingredient_n of_o it_o represent_v nevertheless_o the_o order_n and_o course_n of_o that_o solemn_a service_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o this_o difference_n of_o the_o first_o and_o second_o service_n in_o the_o liturgy_n extant_a be_v rather_o retain_v for_o fashion_n sake_n and_o in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o ancient_a order_n then_o according_a to_o the_o original_a purpose_n of_o it_o for_o it_o shall_v appear_v that_o some_o part_n of_o the_o prayer_n which_o at_o the_o first_o be_v for_o believer_n alone_o and_o such_o as_o communicate_v not_o to_o come_v till_o the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n be_v go_v forth_o in_o all_o the_o greek_a and_o eastern_a liturgy_n be_v now_o put_v into_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o service_n but_o the_o end_n of_o the_o first_o service_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o that_o which_o only_a believer_n be_v present_a at_o be_v manifest_a enough_o in_o it_o as_o it_o be_v in_o downright_a term_n express_v in_o all_o the_o greek_a and_o eastern_a liturgy_n when_o the_o hearer_n be_v to_o go_v forth_o not_o in_o the_o place_n where_fw-mi durandus_fw-la will_v have_v it_o iiii_o 1._o after_o the_o offer_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 18_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n in_o dionysius_n in_o other_o after_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o hearer_n &_o penitent_n which_o follow_v as_o soon_o as_o the_o sermon_n be_v do_v immediate_o before_o the_o creed_n howsoever_o from_o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o lesson_n of_o the_o epistle_n and_o gospel_n be_v original_o belong_v to_o the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o service_n the_o 18_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n of_o these_o prayer_n for_o the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n speak_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o first_o after_o the_o sermon_n of_o the_o
bishop_n the_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o the_o hearer_n and_o after_o the_o hearer_n be_v depart_v the_o prayer_n for_o the_o penitent_n be_v make_v and_o when_o they_o be_v come_v under_o hand_n and_o depart_v that_o then_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v make_v the_o subject_n and_o fashion_n of_o these_o prayer_n both_o be_v very_o plain_o describe_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o have_v be_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d viij_o 5_o 6._o all_o rise_n up_o let_v the_o deacon_n get_v up_o on_o some_o high_a place_n and_o pronounce_v none_o of_o the_o hearer_n none_o of_o the_o unbeliever_n and_o silence_n be_v make_v let_v he_o say_v pray_v you_o hearer_n and_o let_v all_o the_o believer_n pray_v for_o they_o in_o their_o mind_n say_v lord_z have_v mercy_n and_o let_v he_o minister_v for_o they_o say_v let_v we_o all_o beseech_v the_o lord_n for_o the_o hearer_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o at_o every_o of_o these_o particular_n which_o the_o deacon_n speak_v to_o they_o of_o let_v the_o people_n say_v lord_z have_v mercy_n the_o particular_n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v there_o at_o large_a that_o god_n will_v hear_v they_o that_o he_o will_v enlighten_v they_o and_o make_v they_o wise_a that_o he_o will_v teach_v they_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o these_o the_o deacon_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n when_o he_o bid_v they_o pray_v that_o god_n will_v do_v so_o and_o so_o for_o they_o which_o kind_n of_o prayer_n minister_v by_o the_o deacon_n as_o he_o say_v afore_o be_v call_v therefore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o allocution_n and_o the_o people_n answer_v at_o every_o point_n as_o at_o litany_n the_o people_n still_o have_v their_o answer_n call_v sometime_o the_o suffrage_n lord_n have_v mercy_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o be_v use_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o form_n of_o these_o prayer_n be_v prescript_n because_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o deacon_n afterward_o it_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o bend_v down_o their_o head_n let_v the_o bishop_n ordain_v for_o the_o service_n which_o be_v here_o describe_v be_v at_o the_o ordination_n of_o a_o bishop_n bless_v they_o say_v as_o it_o follow_v there_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n be_v prayer_n make_v for_o the_o beset_v with_o unclean_a spirit_n and_o for_o the_o penitent_n but_o that_o in_o these_o the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n express_v that_o they_o be_v to_o come_v and_o kneel_v the_o bishop_n hold_v his_o hand_n over_o their_o head_n and_o so_o pronounce_v the_o like_a prayer_n of_o blessing_n over_o they_o which_o be_v therefore_o there_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o come_v under_o hand_n and_o from_o whence_o in_o this_o condition_n they_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o that_o fall_v under_o to_o wit_n the_o bishop_n hand_n these_o form_n be_v here_o describe_v both_o to_o declare_v the_o ancient_a practice_n and_o also_o for_o a_o help_n towards_o the_o understanding_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v after_o the_o departure_n of_o the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n there_o follow_v principal_o two_o sort_n of_o prayer_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o word_n of_o justine_n in_o his_o second_o apology_n where_o that_o most_o ancient_a martyr_n that_o flourish_v some_o thirty_o or_o forty_o year_n after_o s._n john_n death_n that_o be_v after_o the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n relate_v the_o course_n of_o public_a service_n at_o the_o assembly_n of_o christian_n after_o the_o sermon_n he_o thus_o describe_v what_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d after_o we_o all_o rise_v and_o send_v forth_o prayer_n and_o as_o we_o say_v afore_o when_o we_o have_v do_v pray_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o water_n be_v offer_v and_o the_o ruler_n likewise_o send_v forth_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n with_o all_o his_o might_n here_o you_o have_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n in_o the_o first_o place_n which_o therefore_o be_v call_v in_o the_o word_n relate_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d common_a prayer_n or_o prayer_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n to_o distinguish_v they_o from_o those_o prayer_n &_o thanksgiving_n which_o he_o say_v be_v make_v afterward_o for_o consecrate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n alone_o though_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o people_n where_o by_o the_o way_n you_o may_v see_v further_o that_o justine_n mean_v by_o those_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o express_v nothing_o but_o that_o earnest_a devotion_n which_o those_o prayer_n be_v offer_v with_o by_o that_o which_o he_o add_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o likewise_o for_o have_v say_v in_o the_o word_n allege_v afore_o that_o the_o congregation_n make_v the_o former_a sort_n which_o he_o call_v their_o common_a prayer_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o vehement_o he_o add_v that_o the_o bishop_n make_v the_o thanksgiving_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v with_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o like_a sort_n with_o all_o his_o might_n with_o the_o like_a earnest_a devotion_n which_o the_o other_o be_v make_v with_o the_o most_o ancient_a description_n that_o we_o have_v next_o to_o this_o of_o the_o form_n of_o this_o solemn_a service_n seem_v to_o be_v that_o which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o by_o many_o thing_n we_o may_v find_v that_o that_o book_n mean_v to_o express_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n afore_o constantine_n you_o may_v have_v observe_v before_o how_o it_o forbid_v the_o faithful_a to_o plead_v before_o the_o power_n of_o this_o world_n that_o be_v before_o heathen_a magistrate_n and_o that_o course_n of_o divide_v portion_n at_o their_o feast_n of_o love_n which_o be_v there_o prescribe_v be_v afore_o observe_v to_o be_v abolish_v by_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n which_o be_v before_o constantine_n and_o in_o the_o form_n of_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o consecration_n whereof_o afterward_o set_v down_o there_o viij_o 12._o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o the_o emperor_n and_o power_n of_o the_o world_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o they_o may_v keep_v peace_n with_o we_o that_o be_v not_o persecute_v the_o church_n in_o this_o work_n then_o l._n viij_o c._n 10._o 11._o be_v describe_v at_o large_a first_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o whole_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o particular_a member_n and_o condition_n of_o it_o and_o after_o that_o c._n 12._o the_o prayer_n of_o thanksgiving_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v with_o and_o to_o show_v evident_a distinction_n of_o these_o two_o part_n of_o the_o service_n the_o kiss_n of_o peace_n come_v between_o both_o which_o be_v a_o receive_a custom_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n give_v cause_n to_o presume_v that_o the_o prayer_n between_o which_o it_o be_v interpose_v be_v no_o less_o derive_v from_o the_o primitive_a practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n time_n though_o true_a it_o be_v that_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o western_a church_n it_o follow_v after_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n before_o the_o receive_n of_o it_o there_o follow_v beside_o in_o the_o same_o place_n a_o new_a admonition_n of_o the_o deacon_n to_o all_o that_o have_v not_o right_a to_o communicate_v to_o depart_v before_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n among_o the_o rest_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d you_o that_o pray_v the_o first_o prayer_n depart_v which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v this_o that_o such_o of_o the_o believer_n as_o be_v present_a indeed_o at_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o congregation_n for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o church_n but_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o communicate_v shall_v also_o depart_v to_o show_v the_o difference_n of_o those_o two_o prayer_n whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v the_o subject_n whereof_o deserve_v to_o be_v further_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o most_o ancient_a of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n justine_n martyr_n after_o the_o word_n allege_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n thus_o describe_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o which_o he_o say_v the_o new_a baptize_v be_v bring_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o we_o may_v be_v think_v meet_v have_v learn_v the_o truth_n to_o be_v also_o find_v good_a liver_n in_o work_n and_o keeper_n of_o thing_n command_v so_o as_o to_o be_v everlasting_o save_v he_o specifi_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o those_o prayer_n for_o otherwise_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o word_n afore_o quote_v that_o they_o pray_v in_o they_o for_o themselves_o for_o the_o new_a baptise_a
which_z the_o rationalist_n call_v the_o litany_n to_o be_v that_o which_o remain_v of_o they_o the_o model_n of_o the_o latin_a service_n be_v so_o abbridge_v as_o be_v observe_v afore_o and_o by_o s._n ambrose_n or_o whosoever_o write_v those_o book_n de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la it_o appear_v that_o prayer_n be_v make_v to_o that_o effect_n before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n his_o word_n be_v four_o 4._o oratio_fw-la praemittitur_fw-la pro_fw-la populo_fw-la pro_fw-la regibus_fw-la pro_fw-la caeteris_fw-la prayer_n be_v premise_v say_v he_o to_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o people_n for_o the_o emperor_n for_o the_o rest_n but_o in_o those_o word_n he_o speak_v of_o prayer_n that_o be_v make_v at_o the_o lord_n board_n by_o he_o that_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n of_o which_o afterward_o not_o of_o those_o that_o be_v minister_v by_o the_o deacon_n speak_v to_o the_o people_n in_o the_o manner_n aforesaid_a which_o nevertheless_o s._n augustine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n remember_v when_o he_o say_v epist_n 118._o cùm_fw-la communis_fw-la oratio_fw-la voce_fw-la diaconi_fw-la indicitur_fw-la when_o common_a prayer_n be_v indict_v by_o the_o deacon_n voice_n for_o this_o be_v that_o which_o justine_n martyr_v call_v common_a prayer_n afore_o rhenanus_fw-la in_o tertull._n de_fw-fr corona_n et_fw-la arbitrantur_fw-la quidem_fw-la illi_fw-la missam_fw-la incepisse_fw-la dicente_fw-la saceraote_fw-la dominus_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la &_o mox_fw-la sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la domino_fw-la deo_fw-la nostro_fw-la and_o they_o true_o that_o be_v those_o that_o study_v the_o ancient_a form_n of_o service_n out_o of_o the_o elder_a and_o best_a church-writer_n think_v that_o the_o mass_n begin_v when_o the_o priest_n say_v the_o lord_n be_v with_o you_o and_o by_o and_o by_o lift_v up_o your_o heart_n afterward_o let_v we_o give_v thanks_o to_o our_o lord_n god._n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n begin_v always_o with_o the_o preface_n sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la well_o and_o good_a but_o if_o he_o mean_v this_o that_o the_o second_o service_n or_o the_o prayer_n at_o which_o believer_n alone_o be_v present_a begin_v then_o it_o be_v a_o oversight_n the_o testimony_n produce_v be_v beyond_o exception_n to_o show_v that_o according_a to_o the_o most_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n prayer_n be_v make_v for_o all_o state_n of_o man_n and_o of_o the_o church_n first_o in_o the_o manner_n aforesaid_a in_o fine_a the_o great_a agreement_n of_o all_o the_o liturgy_n specify_v come_v from_o those_o most_o ancient_a eastern_a church_n with_o the_o elder_a of_o church-writer_n together_o with_o other_o pregnant_a circumstance_n that_o concur_v make_v i_o bold_a to_o conclude_v that_o the_o practice_n of_o these_o prayer_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o their_o time_n and_o be_v the_o same_o whereof_o s._n paul_n write_v rom._n viij_o 26_o 27._o likewise_o the_o spirit_n also_o help_v our_o infirmity_n for_o we_o know_v not_o what_o we_o shall_v pray_v for_o as_o we_o ought_v but_o the_o spirit_n itself_o make_v intercession_n for_o we_o with_o groan_n which_o can_v be_v utter_v and_o he_o that_o search_v the_o heart_n know_v what_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o it_o make_v intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n according_a to_o god_n for_o according_a to_o the_o exposition_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n prove_v good_a afore_o these_o prayer_n which_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n be_v make_v by_o man_n endue_v with_o prophetic_a grace_n call_v here_o the_o spirit_n be_v afterward_o minister_v by_o the_o deacon_n go_v afore_o the_o people_n which_o hold_v good_a of_o these_o not_o only_o according_a to_o all_o the_o liturgy_n and_o authority_n allege_v but_o according_a to_o justine_n in_o chief_a and_o in_o the_o elder_a place_n who_o when_o he_o relate_v that_o he_o which_o minister_v the_o eucharist_n begin_v not_o but_o with_o the_o thanksgiving_n after_o these_o which_o he_o call_v the_o common_a prayer_n be_v end_v give_v presumption_n enough_o that_o the_o say_v common_a prayer_n be_v minister_v by_o the_o deacon_n with_o he_o as_o with_o s._n chrysostome_n then_o the_o term_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n express_v the_o nature_n of_o these_o prayer_n call_v they_o intercession_n for_o the_o saint_n seem_v to_o specify_v the_o subject_n whereof_o we_o speak_v for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o last_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v make_v intercession_n for_o we_o with_o groan_n not_o to_o be_v utter_v and_o afore_o vers_fw-la 23._o ourselves_o also_o which_o have_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n even_o we_o ourselves_o groan_v within_o ourselves_o s._n chrysostome_n testify_v that_o the_o correspondent_a hereof_o be_v do_v by_o the_o deacon_n in_o his_o time_n with_o who_o agree_v the_o word_n of_o justine_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wherein_o he_o witness_v the_o earnest_a vehemence_n which_o these_o prayer_n be_v make_v with_o and_o in_o the_o prayer_n quote_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n which_o as_o have_v be_v show_v be_v make_v after_o the_o same_o sort_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o beseech_v the_o lord_n for_o they_o still_o more_o vehement_o and_o in_o that_o for_o the_o faithful_a at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v we_o stand_v up_o have_v vehement_o pray_v and_o to_o the_o penitent_n in_o the_o beginning_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pray_v you_o that_o be_v under_o penance_n vehement_o and_o the_o cyrie_a cleeson_fw-mi or_o lord_n have_v mercy_n the_o foot_n and_o burden_n of_o this_o prayer_n as_o you_o have_v see_v in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n basil_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o that_o of_o s._n peter_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d understand_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o prayer_n of_o vehement_a and_o earnest_a supplication_n to_o god_n all_o argument_n of_o that_o vehemence_n and_o earnest_a devotion_n which_o the_o fashion_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o litany_n if_o it_o be_v relish_v aright_o still_o breathe_v derive_v from_o those_o groan_n and_o tear_n with_o which_o man_n endue_v with_o primitive_a grace_n make_v then_o intercession_n to_o god_n for_o the_o church_n and_o state_n of_o it_o and_o perhaps_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v 1._o cor._n xiiii_o 15._o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o mean_v no_o other_o prayer_n but_o those_o whereof_o he_o write_v to_o the_o roman_n those_o first_o sort_n of_o prayer_n whereof_o here_o we_o speak_v at_o the_o service_n of_o believer_n for_o in_o that_o which_o follow_v vers_fw-la 16._o else_o when_o thou_o shall_v bless_v with_o the_o spirit_n how_o shall_v he_o that_o occupi_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a say_n amen_o at_o thy_o give_v of_o thanks_o see_v he_o understand_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v for_o thou_o very_o give_v thanks_o well_o but_o the_o other_o be_v not_o edify_v many_o thing_n induce_v i_o to_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o nothing_o else_o but_o of_o that_o thanksgiving_n which_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v with_o and_o from_o which_o it_o have_v the_o name_n and_o be_v the_o next_o point_n in_o the_o order_n of_o this_o service_n for_o so_o the_o apostle_n direction_n will_v appear_v complete_a reach_v to_o all_o part_n of_o the_o service_n which_o proceed_v from_o man_n particular_n for_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v here_o except_v presuppose_v as_o the_o subject_n and_o employment_n of_o present_a grace_n for_o the_o psalm_n of_o god_n praise_n which_o the_o spirit_n then_o indict_v he_o provide_v when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o will_v sing_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o for_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o scripture_n more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o rule_n that_o follow_v from_z vers_n 26._o for_o the_o prayer_n which_o by_o the_o suggestion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v make_v for_o the_o church_n and_o all_o state_n of_o it_o when_o he_o say_v i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o spirit_n but_o i_o will_v pray_v with_o the_o understanding_n also_o for_o the_o prayer_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o in_o the_o word_n now_o in_o hand_n vers_n 16_o 17._o the_o commentary_n under_o s._n ambrose_n his_o name_n he_o ex_fw-la hebraeis_n erant_fw-la qui_fw-la aliquando_fw-la syrâ_fw-la linguâ_fw-la plerumque_fw-la hebraeâ_fw-la in_o tractatibus_fw-la &_o oblationibus_fw-la utebantur_fw-la ad_fw-la commendationem_fw-la gloriabantur_fw-la enim_fw-la se_fw-la dici_fw-la hebraeos_fw-la propter_fw-la meritum_fw-la abrahae_fw-la
these_o that_o will_v needs_o speak_v in_o strange_a language_n in_o the_o church_n be_v of_o the_o hebrew_n which_o for_o their_o commendation_n use_v sometime_o the_o syriack_n must_v a_o end_v the_o hebrew_n in_o their_o sermon_n and_o oblation_n for_o they_o take_v pride_n to_o be_v call_v hebrew_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o abraham_n the_o offer_v be_v the_o whole_a action_n of_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o as_o shall_v appear_v so_o say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o they_o do_v it_o in_o syriack_n and_o hebrew_n he_o direct_v we_o to_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n in_o that_o which_o he_o call_v blessing_n and_o thanksgiving_n which_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o elder_a of_o church-writer_n stand_v sometime_o absolute_o and_o without_o addition_n to_o signify_v by_o way_n of_o eminence_n the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n otherwise_o why_o be_v it_o call_v 1._o cor._n x._o 16._o the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o bless_v but_o from_o that_o blessing_n or_o thanksgiving_n as_o it_o be_v indifferent_o call_v in_o the_o scripture_n with_o which_o it_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n and_o appoint_v to_o be_v use_v afterward_o ignatius_n ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v that_o be_v count_v a_o sound_a thanksgiving_n which_o be_v under_o the_o bishop_n or_o to_o who_o he_o give_v leave_v his_o meaning_n be_v that_o to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n apart_o from_o the_o bishop_n and_o without_o his_o order_n be_v not_o effectual_a towards_o god_n the_o true_a clemens_n s._n paul_n scholar_n epist_n ad_fw-la corinth_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d let_v each_o of_o you_o brethren_n give_v thanks_o to_o god_n in_o his_o own_o rank_n he_o direct_v the_o presbyter_n of_o corinth_n to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n by_o their_o turn_n to_o avoid_v contention_n about_o it_o in_o the_o word_n of_o ireneus_fw-la relate_v in_o greek_a by_o epiphanius_n haer._n xxxiv_o of_o the_o marcosian_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pretend_v to_o give_v thanks_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o pretend_v to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n and_o so_o more_o than_o once_o afterward_o therefore_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v how_o shall_v he_o say_v amen_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o seem_v to_o mean_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o for_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o people_n say_v amen_n at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o thanksgiving_n be_v so_o solemn_o remark_v in_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v just_o seem_v to_o make_v reference_n to_o it_o justine_n m._n apol._n 11._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o have_v do_v his_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n all_o the_o people_n present_a join_v assent_n with_o he_o say_v amen_n then_o the_o chief_a have_v give_v thanks_o and_o all_o the_o people_n assent_v with_o like_a wish_n and_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n in_o eusebius_n hist_o eccles_n seven_o 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v hear_v the_o thanksgiving_n that_o be_v be_v present_a at_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n and_o answer_v amen_o with_o the_o rest_n the_o subject_n of_o this_o thanksgiving_n be_v thus_o express_v by_o justine_n the_o martyr_n in_o his_o dialogue_n with_o trypho_n the_o jew_n where_o he_o compare_v the_o offering_n of_o fine_a flower_n for_o the_o leprous_a at_o his_o cleanse_a according_a to_o the_o law_n levit._n xiiii_o 10._o with_o the_o bread_n of_o that_o thanksgiving_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v appoint_v we_o to_o make_v in_o remembrance_n of_o his_o passion_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o withal_o we_o may_v give_v thanks_o to_o god_n for_o have_v make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n in_o it_o for_o man_n and_o for_o have_v free_v we_o from_o that_o naughtiness_n wherein_o we_o be_v bear_v and_o overthrow_v principality_n and_o power_n with_o a_o perfect_a overthrow_n by_o he_o that_o become_v passable_a according_a to_o his_o counsel_n and_o ireneus_fw-la three_o 34._o argue_v against_o the_o heretic_n of_o that_o time_n that_o deny_v god_n the_o father_n to_o have_v create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n because_o then_o the_o church_n shall_v do_v affront_n to_o god_n offer_v he_o the_o creature_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v not_o for_o his_o sufficient_o show_v that_o the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v offer_v with_o this_o eucharist_n or_o thanksgiving_n as_o well_o for_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o we_o justine_n martyr_n apol._n two_o justifi_v the_o christian_n against_o the_o heathen_a that_o consume_v not_o god_n creature_n with_o fire_n in_o sacrifice_n but_o receive_v they_o with_o word_n of_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o be_v bear_v and_o for_o all_o mean_n of_o health_n kind_n of_o quality_n and_o change_n of_o season_n wherein_o though_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o god_n creature_n yet_o withal_o he_o seem_v to_o describe_v that_o thanksgiving_n which_o then_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o be_v then_o use_v as_o it_o be_v institute_v at_o meat_n in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n viij_o 12._o you_o have_v at_o large_a lay_v down_o the_o form_n of_o this_o thanksgiving_n contain_v first_o a_o rehearsal_n of_o god_n unspeakable_a perfection_n of_o the_o creation_n by_o christ_n of_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o of_o man_n in_o righteousness_n of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n towards_o man_n have_v sin_v before_o the_o law_n and_o by_o it_o with_o praise_n to_o he_o therefore_o with_o the_o cherubin_n and_o seraphim_n but_o more_o particular_o recount_v the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o his_o dispensation_n in_o the_o flesh_n especial_o his_o suffering_n death_n and_o rise_v again_o hereupon_o it_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v therefore_o be_v mindful_a of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o suffer_v for_o we_o we_o give_v thou_o thanks_o almighty_a god_n not_o so_o much_o as_o we_o ought_v but_o as_o much_o as_o we_o be_v able_a there_o be_v justine_n martyr_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o fulfil_v his_o appointment_n for_o upon_o the_o night_n wherein_o he_o be_v betray_v rehearse_v the_o whole_a word_n of_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n upon_o this_o the_o same_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o this_o thanksgiving_n in_o the_o liturgy_n entitle_v to_o s._n james_n and_o s._n basil_n both_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o latin_a and_o that_o which_o we_o have_v from_o masius_n out_o of_o the_o syriack_n in_o that_o of_o s._n chrysostome_n it_o be_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n but_o in_o few_o word_n in_o that_o of_o s._n mark_n the_o same_o for_o substance_n but_o more_o in_o brief_a and_o for_o order_n somewhat_o otherwise_o so_o in_o that_o which_o i_o speak_v of_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o arabic_a under_o the_o name_n of_o s._n basil_n s._n gregory_n and_o s._n cyril_n in_o this_o last_o as_o in_o that_o of_o s._n mark_n and_o not_o much_o otherwise_o in_o that_o of_o the_o christian_n of_o saint_n thomas_n in_o india_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o preface_n seem_v to_o be_v that_o which_o remain_v of_o this_o thanksgiving_n for_o it_o express_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n with_o much_o vehemence_n though_o the_o subject_n of_o those_o praise_n either_o concern_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n or_o our_o redemption_n be_v not_o contain_v in_o it_o for_o the_o tenor_n of_o it_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n that_o of_o our_o service_n it_o be_v very_o meet_v right_a and_o afterward_o therefore_o with_o angel_n and_o archangel_n beside_o the_o proper_a preface_n in_o which_o be_v celebrate_v the_o work_n of_o god_n goodness_n which_o the_o church_n remember_v upon_o several_a solemnity_n in_o fine_a it_o seem_v that_o this_o thanksgiving_n from_o which_o both_o the_o action_n of_o celebrate_v this_o sacrament_n and_o the_o consecrate_a element_n themselves_o be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o justine_n martyr_n and_o ireneus_fw-la do_v from_o the_o elder_a time_n of_o the_o church_n contain_v the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n in_o regard_n to_o the_o ordinary_a use_n of_o god_n creature_n for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o our_o body_n because_o it_o be_v at_o the_o first_o practise_v as_o it_o be_v institute_v at_o meat_n so_o much_o the_o word_n of_o justine_n martyr_n relate_v afore_o seem_v to_o import_v when_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o only_a sacrifice_n that_o christian_n have_v receive_v to_o offer_v be_v that_o of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n at_o their_o nourishment_n at_o which_o remembrance_n be_v make_v of_o the_o passion_n which_o god_n suffer_v
for_o we_o but_o as_o this_o sacrament_n be_v frequent_v no_o otherwise_o then_o as_o the_o most_o solemn_a part_n of_o god_n public_a service_n at_o religious_a assembly_n for_o that_o purpose_n whatsoever_o be_v express_v more_o or_o less_o of_o the_o subject_n of_o it_o concern_v the_o creation_n and_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o in_o all_o manner_n of_o liturgy_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n there_o be_v none_o that_o i_o have_v see_v which_o do_v not_o premise_v this_o thanksgiving_n and_o praise_n to_o god_n to_o the_o celebration_n of_o that_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a that_o in_o that_o distance_n of_o time_n and_o place_n from_o which_o we_o receive_v the_o several_a form_n yet_o extant_a with_o so_o much_o difference_n as_o must_v needs_o proceed_v from_o thence_o yet_o there_o be_v two_o particular_n of_o it_o in_o which_o all_o the_o form_n that_o be_v extant_a agree_v the_o one_o the_o beginning_n of_o it_o with_o sursum_fw-la corda_fw-la or_o lift_v up_o your_o heart_n the_o people_n answer_v as_o we_o use_v it_o and_o then_o to_o let_v we_o understand_v to_o what_o purpose_n they_o be_v exhort_v to_o do_v it_o let_v we_o give_v thanks_o to_o our_o lord_n god_n specify_v the_o prayer_n which_o i_o now_o describe_v the_o other_o be_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a with_o the_o fellowship_n of_o angel_n in_o this_o office_n express_v in_o the_o trisagion_n or_o seraphical_a hymn_n holy_a holy_a holy_a lord_n god_n of_o sabbaoth_n for_o though_o there_o be_v much_o difference_n between_o form_n that_o be_v extant_a yet_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o find_v any_o of_o they_o wherein_o both_o those_o have_v not_o a_o place_n which_o have_v the_o form_n be_v arbitrary_a can_v not_o have_v come_v to_o pass_v here_o a_o question_n lie_v to_o my_o apprehension_n very_o much_o concern_v this_o purpose_n whereas_o the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v depute_v to_o the_o effect_n of_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o they_o that_o receive_v they_o aright_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o our_o lord_n execute_v by_o the_o church_n how_o it_o can_v be_v conceive_v that_o by_o give_v thanks_o to_o god_n to_o the_o purpose_n specify_v they_o be_v on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n depute_v to_o such_o effect_n to_o i_o it_o seem_v unquestionable_a that_o the_o thanksgiving_n wherewith_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v say_v to_o have_v celebrate_v this_o sacrament_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n contain_v also_o prayer_n to_o god_n for_o the_o effect_n to_o which_o the_o element_n when_o they_o become_v this_o sacrament_n be_v depute_v and_o that_o the_o church_n upon_o his_o example_n have_v always_o frequent_v his_o institution_n with_o the_o like_a rehearse_v his_o institution_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n and_o pray_v for_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o at_o the_o present_a after_o the_o thanksgiving_n hitherto_o describe_v and_o so_o whereas_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v that_o be_v transubstantiate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o rehearse_v the_o affirmative_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n as_o operative_a in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v consecrate_v that_o be_v depute_v to_o be_v this_o sacrament_n and_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o congregation_n ground_v upon_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o promise_n which_o it_o impli_v let_v i_o suppose_v in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o the_o element_n by_o be_v depute_v to_o become_v this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o abolish_v for_o their_o substance_n nor_o cease_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v but_o yet_o begin_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v not_o that_o be_v visible_a sign_n not_o only_o to_o figure_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n his_o cross_n which_o be_v so_o use_v they_o be_v apt_a to_o do_v of_o themselves_o set_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n aside_o but_o also_o to_o tender_v and_o exhibit_v the_o invisible_a grace_n which_o they_o represent_v to_o they_o that_o receive_v for_o though_o no_o man_n can_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o dispose_v with_o a_o live_a faith_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o yet_o on_o god_n part_v it_o be_v undoubted_o tender_v to_o those_o that_o be_v not_o so_o dispose_v otherwise_o how_o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o those_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o not_o discern_v the_o same_o and_o otherwise_o how_o say_v our_o lord_n of_o the_o element_n at_o the_o instant_n of_o deliver_v they_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n in_o the_o present_a tense_n let_v i_o suppose_v in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o our_o lord_n in_o celebrate_v this_o sacrament_n make_v use_v of_o the_o receive_a custom_n of_o his_o people_n which_o be_v as_o still_o it_o be_v in_o receive_v all_o good_a thing_n at_o god_n hand_n to_o premise_v thanksgiving_n or_o blessing_n as_o they_o call_v it_o before_o they_o use_v they_o in_o particular_a at_o feast_n before_o supper_n be_v do_v they_o take_v bread_n and_o break_v it_o and_o give_v it_o about_o and_o the_o cup_n of_o wine_n likewise_o have_v bless_v god_n for_o the_o use_n of_o those_o excellent_a creature_n upon_o solemnity_n and_o particular_a occasion_n mention_n be_v make_v of_o that_o which_o the_o time_n require_v this_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o those_o two_o point_n of_o the_o thanksgiving_n discuss_v afore_o the_o use_n of_o those_o creature_n and_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n which_o our_o lord_n specify_v upon_o the_o exigenc●_n of_o the_o general_a custom_n and_o the_o particular_a occasion_n and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n according_a to_o justine_n martyr_n frequent_v upon_o his_o example_n but_o as_o in_o the_o like_a case_n at_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o loaf_n when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o our_o lord_n look_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o bless_a matt_n fourteen_o 19_o or_o give_v thanks_o as_o it_o be_v john_n vi_fw-la 11._o i●_n can_v be_v doubt_v that_o beside_o blessing_n god_n for_o his_o creature_n he_o pray_v also_o for_o the_o purpose_n of_o that_o which_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v no_o more_o be_v it_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o the_o thanksgiving_n which_o he_o make_v over_o those_o element_n for_o that_o which_o they_o represent_v contain_v also_o prayer_n that_o by_o they_o it_o may_v be_v communicate_v to_o his_o disciple_n the_o tenor_n and_o consequence_n of_o our_o lord_n word_n require_v no_o less_o for_o that_o which_o be_v affirm_v must_v be_v true_a before_o it_o be_v true_o affirm_v and_o the_o process_n of_o this_o action_n blessing_n and_o deliver_v the_o element_n and_o command_v to_o receive_v they_o as_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n import_v that_o he_o intend_v to_o affirm_v that_o so_o they_o be_v in_o the_o true_a sense_n which_o the_o word_n import_v at_o the_o instant_n of_o deliver_v they_o and_o by_o what_o consequence_n can_v his_o disciple_n conceive_v they_o to_o be_v depute_v for_o sign_n to_o exhibit_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n upon_o his_o give_v of_o thanks_o over_o they_o for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n unless_o we_o suppose_v his_o thanksgiving_n whereof_o the_o gospel_n speak_v to_o contain_v also_o prayer_n that_o they_o may_v become_v effectual_a to_o that_o purpose_n and_o herewith_o agree_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n every_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v good_a and_o none_o to_o be_v reject_v be_v receive_v with_o thanksgiving_n for_o it_o be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o prayer_n for_o here_o the_o thanksgiving_n wherewith_o the_o creature_n be_v sanctify_v to_o the_o nourishment_n of_o our_o body_n contain_v also_o prayer_n ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o appoint_v they_o for_o that_o purpose_n according_o therefore_o the_o thanksgiving_n wherewith_o these_o element_n be_v sanctify_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o be_v the_o nourishment_n of_o the_o soul_n must_v contain_v prayer_n not_o ground_v upon_o the_o institution_n of_o god_n to_o that_o purpose_n because_o the_o act_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o present_a go_v before_o his_o institution_n for_o the_o future_a but_o as_o join_v to_o his_o command_n ground_v a_o word_n of_o promise_n to_o the_o church_n whereupon_o it_o be_v to_o do_v likewise_o and_o herewith_o agree_v those_o form_n of_o thanksgiving_n or_o as_o they_o call_v they_o benediction_n which_o the_o jew_n at_o this_o day_n practice_n from_o very_o ancient_a time_n as_o they_o pretend_v for_o the_o foot_n and_o close_v of_o divers_a the_o most_o remarkable_a of_o they_o be_v with_o prayer_n for_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o that_o wherefore_o they_o give_v
thanks_o for_o example_n among_o the_o daily_a xviii_o bless_a be_v thou_o o_o lord_n our_o god_n that_o remove_v sleep_v from_o our_o eye_n and_o slumber_v from_o our_o eyelid_n and_o let_v it_o please_v thou_o o_o lord_n our_o god_n and_o god_n of_o our_o father_n to_o practice_v we_o in_o thy_o law_n and_o to_o make_v we_o cleave_v to_o thy_o precept_n and_o bring_v we_o not_o into_o sin_n and_o transgression_n and_o temptation_n and_o contempt_n and_o so_o forth_o end_v thus_o bless_a be_v thou_o o_o lord_n that_o give_v good_a grace_n the_o blessing_n of_o the_o law_n that_o be_v the_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o it_o be_v this_o bless_v be_v thou_o o_o lord_n our_o god_n the_o king_n of_o the_o world_n that_o have_v sanctify_v we_o with_o his_o precept_n &_o give_v we_o command_v concern_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o sweeten_v o_o god_n the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n in_o our_o mouth_n and_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o people_n the_o house_n of_o israel_n and_o make_v we_o all_o and_o our_o child_n and_o our_o child_n child_n knower_n of_o thy_o name_n and_o learner_n of_o thy_o law_n for_o itself_o bless_v art_n thou_o o_o lord_n that_o teach_v thy_o people_n israel_n the_o law_n so_o in_o the_o blessing_n of_o wine_n so_o in_o the_o blessing_n after_o meat_n and_o so_o for_o the_o resemblance_n of_o the_o blessing_n of_o our_o lord_n over_o the_o element_n with_o these_o and_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o business_n may_v we_o just_o presume_v that_o it_o run_v in_o the_o like_a form_n to_o the_o purpose_n of_o it_o and_o last_o of_o all_o herewith_o agree_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o for_o certain_a the_o thanksgiving_n describe_v afore_o be_v join_v with_o prayer_n for_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v so_o say_v justine_n that_o the_o precedent_n send_v forth_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n so_o in_o tertullian_n de_fw-la or_o at_o c._n xiiii_o sacrisiciorum_fw-la orationes_fw-la and_o in_o the_o next_o word_n eucharistia_n stand_v both_o for_o the_o same_o so_o in_o the_o ciiii_o of_o the_o african_a canon_n these_o thanksgiving_n be_v call_v preface_n to_o my_o think_n because_o this_o thanksgiving_n be_v always_o premise_v to_o the_o prayer_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v consecrate_v with_o i_o will_v here_o propound_v that_o form_n of_o prayer_n which_o follow_v after_o the_o rehearsal_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o a_o prayer_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o all_o the_o eastern_a liturgy_n which_o if_o we_o compare_v with_o the_o testimony_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n which_o divers_a have_v produce_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o element_n be_v not_o consecrate_v by_o the_o affirmative_a word_n of_o christ_n as_o operative_a but_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v appear_v that_o it_o be_v the_o prayer_n whereof_o we_o now_o speak_v always_o use_v in_o the_o church_n to_o obtain_v of_o god_n the_o promise_n which_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n suppose_v that_o the_o element_n present_v may_v be_v depute_v to_o the_o effect_n of_o become_v visible_a sign_n tender_v &_o exhibit_v the_o invisible_a grace_n which_o they_o figure_v which_o be_v that_o which_o in_o this_o matter_n be_v call_v consecration_n as_o i_o suppose_v have_v repeat_v the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n where_o we_o leave_v afore_o it_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d therefore_o mindful_a of_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n and_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o of_o his_o second_o appearance_n at_o which_o he_o be_v to_o come_v with_o glory_n and_o power_n to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o dead_a and_o to_o render_v to_o every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n we_o offer_v to_o thou_o our_o king_n and_o god_n according_a to_o his_o appointment_n this_o bread_n and_o this_o cup_n give_v thanks_o to_o thou_o through_o he_o that_o thou_o have_v vouchsafe_v we_o to_o stand_v before_o thou_o and_o to_o minister_v unto_o thou_o and_o beseech_v thou_o that_o thou_o will_v look_v favourable_o upon_o these_o oblation_n present_a before_o thou_o thou_o god_n that_o want_v nothing_o and_o accept_v they_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o thy_o christ_n and_o send_v down_o the_o holy_a spirit_n witness_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n upon_o this_o sacrifice_n to_o exhibit_v this_o bread_n the_o body_n and_o this_o cup_n the_o blood_n of_o thy_o christ_n that_o they_o which_o partake_v of_o it_o may_v be_v confirm_v in_o godliness_n obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n be_v deliver_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o deceit_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n become_v worthy_a of_o thy_o christ_n and_o obtain_v life_n everlasting_a thou_o be_v reconcile_v to_o they_o god_n almighty_n it_o be_v clear_o true_a in_o the_o sense_n and_o language_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o s._n ambrose_n say_v de_fw-fr iis_fw-la qui_fw-la mist_n init_fw-la c._n ix_o ante_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la alia_fw-la species_n nominatur_fw-la post_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la significatur_fw-la before_o consecration_n another_o species_n be_v name_v that_o be_v the_o bread_n after_o it_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v signify_v and_o de_fw-fr sacr._n v._n 4._o dixi_fw-la vobis_fw-la quòd_fw-la ante_fw-la verba_fw-la christi_fw-la quod_fw-la offertur_fw-la panis_fw-la dicatur_fw-la ubi_fw-la christi_fw-la verba_fw-la depromta_fw-la fuerint_fw-la jam_fw-la non_fw-la panis_fw-la dicitur_fw-la sed_fw-la corpus_fw-la appellatur_fw-la i_o tell_v you_o that_o before_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o which_o be_v offer_v be_v call_v bread_n after_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n ●●e_v produce_v it_o be_v no_o more_o call_v bread_n it_o be_v call_v his_o body_n therefore_o whereas_o in_o this_o prayer_n the_o element_n be_v name_v by_o their_o kind_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o all_o that_o while_o they_o be_v not_o conceive_v or_o intend_v to_o be_v consecrate_v and_o what_o doubt_n can_v there_o be_v in_o that_o when_o we_o see_v a_o prayer_n follow_v wherein_o be_v desire_v that_o the_o element_n may_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v turn_v over_o the_o copy_n of_o liturgy_n which_o we_o have_v extant_a from_o the_o eastern_a church_n shall_v find_v they_o to_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o after_o the_o institution_n be_v rehearse_v out_o of_o the_o gospel_n profess_v that_o what_o be_v present_o do_v be_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o same_o prayer_n be_v make_v first_o that_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o element_n may_v be_v sanctify_v to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o that_o they_o may_v be_v to_o such_o effect_n of_o grace_n as_o be_v specify_v in_o the_o form_n rehearse_v to_o they_o that_o communicate_v only_o in_o the_o missal_n of_o the_o maronites_n print_v at_o rome_n there_o be_v divers_a form_n of_o consecration_n which_o they_o call_v anaphora_fw-la under_o the_o apostle_n name_n and_o other_o eastern_a doctor_n wherein_o this_o prayer_n seem_v to_o be_v wilful_o change_v to_o make_v they_o conformable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v print_v there_o for_o the_o use_n of_o that_o nation_n in_o the_o year_n mdxciv_o in_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n there_o seem_v not_o by_o the_o now_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n but_o by_o the_o remembrance_n of_o it_o extant_a in_o ancient_a church-writer_n to_o have_v be_v some_o difference_n from_o this_o and_o that_o difference_n seem_v to_o have_v occasion_v the_o error_n of_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n concern_v consecration_n by_o operative_a word_n nevertheless_o the_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n or_o whosoever_o write_v those_o book_n the_o sacram._n be_v these_o v._o 4._o vis_fw-fr scire_fw-la quia_fw-la verbis_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la consecratur_fw-la accipe_fw-la quae_fw-la sint_fw-la verba_fw-la dicit_fw-la sacerdos_n fac_n nobis_fw-la hanc_fw-la hostiam_fw-la asscriptam_fw-la rationabilem_fw-la acceptabilem_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la &_o sanguinis_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la qui_fw-la pridie_fw-la quàm_fw-la pateretur_fw-la will_v thou_o know_v that_o it_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o heavenly_a word_n hear_v what_o be_v the_o word_n the_o priest_n say_v make_v this_o sacrifice_n imputable_a accountable_a acceptable_a for_o we_o which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ._n who_o the_o night_n before_o he_o suffer_v &_o so_o forth_o proceed_v to_o rehearse_v the_o institution_n out_o of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v add_v ratam_fw-la or_o ratify_v fac_n nobis_fw-la hanc_fw-la hostiam_fw-la asscriptam_fw-la ratam_fw-la rationabilem_fw-la
much_o to_o my_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o be_v to_o show_v how_o the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v he_o produce_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n join_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n institution_n execute_v by_o the_o church_n with_o prayer_n to_o god_n to_o ratify_v and_o accept_v the_o element_n present_o offer_v to_o be_v the_o figure_n and_o remembrance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v depute_v to_o become_v this_o sacrament_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n these_o word_n be_v somewhat_o change_v from_o that_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o s._n ambrose_n for_o they_o be_v read_v thus_o ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguis_fw-la siant_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la that_o they_o may_v become_v to_o we_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o most_o belove_a son_n our_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o they_o be_v change_v on_o purpose_n that_o this_o sacrament_n may_v not_o be_v call_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o invisible_a grace_n of_o it_o but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o here_o prayer_n be_v make_v for_o the_o effect_n of_o christ_n institution_n in_o these_o element_n and_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o cross_a to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o their_o own_o service_n s._n ambrose_n observe_v that_o after_o the_o institution_n be_v rehearse_v the_o element_n be_v call_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o reason_n seem_v to_o be_v because_o they_o be_v intend_v to_o be_v depute_v to_o become_v this_o sacrament_n by_o prayer_n ground_v on_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n which_o it_o be_v join_v with_o but_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o after_o the_o institution_n there_o follow_v in_o the_o ancient_a form_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n a_o prayer_n to_o the_o purpose_n though_o not_o in_o the_o term_n of_o that_o which_o now_o follow_v in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o close_a whereof_o be_v this_o ut_fw-la quot_fw-la quot_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la altaris_fw-la participatione_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o sanguinem_fw-la sumserimus_fw-la omni_fw-la benedictione_n coelesti_fw-la &_o gratiâ_fw-la repleamur_fw-la that_o as_o many_o as_o shall_v receive_v the_o holy_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o son_n by_o participate_v of_o this_o altar_n may_v be_v fulfil_v with_o thy_o heavenly_a benediction_n &_o grace_n which_o be_v plain_o in_o lieu_n of_o the_o second_o point_n of_o that_o prayer_n allege_v out_o of_o all_o the_o eastern_a liturgy_n desire_v the_o like_a effect_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o this_o sacrament_n upon_o they_o that_o communicate_v if_o any_o man_n think_v that_o the_o form_n hitherto_o describe_v import_n that_o the_o ancient_a church_n intend_v to_o consecrate_v the_o element_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o abolish_v the_o corporal_a substance_n of_o they_o and_o substitute_n that_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o stead_n not_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n to_o depute_v they_o to_o become_v visible_a sign_n tender_v and_o exhibit_v the_o invisible_a grace_n which_o they_o figure_v he_o shall_v much_o prejudice_v the_o truth_n which_o we_o profess_v the_o due_a advantage_n whereof_o have_v be_v long_o since_o prove_v to_o be_v this_o that_o the_o error_n pin_v upon_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v breed_v &_o maintain_v when_o prayer_n be_v make_v concern_v the_o element_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n ut_fw-la nobis_fw-la corpus_fw-la fiant_fw-la dilectissimi_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la domini_fw-la nostri_fw-la jesus_n christi_fw-la that_o they_o may_v become_v to_o we_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o thy_o well-beloved_a son_n our_o lord_n christ_n jesus_n these_o word_n to_o we_o make_v a_o abatement_n in_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o the_o element_n may_v be_v say_v to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n without_o addition_n in_o the_o same_o true_a sense_n in_o which_o they_o be_v so_o call_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o when_o they_o be_v say_v to_o become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o they_o that_o communicate_v that_o true_a sense_n be_v so_o well_o signify_v and_o express_v that_o the_o word_n can_v well_o be_v understand_v otherwise_o then_o to_o import_v not_o the_o corporal_a substance_n but_o the_o spiritual_a use_n of_o they_o in_o the_o greekish_a form_n prayer_n be_v make_v that_o the_o element_n may_v be_v make_v or_o become_v or_o be_v change_v or_o translate_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o also_o among_o our_o writer_n of_o controversy_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v verify_v and_o be_v indeed_o easy_o verify_v though_o we_o suppose_v they_o not_o to_o cease_v to_o be_v what_o they_o be_v but_o to_o become_v what_o they_o be_v not_o that_o be_v visible_a sign_n exhibit_v the_o invisible_a grace_n which_o they_o figure_v to_o which_o meaning_n that_o which_o always_o follow_v in_o that_o form_n direct_v we_o when_o prayer_n be_v make_v that_o the_o element_n may_v become_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o that_o they_o which_o receive_v they_o may_v be_v fulfil_v with_o the_o blessing_n of_o his_o grace_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o may_v become_v that_o which_o they_o be_v call_v to_o wit_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o corporal_a substance_n and_o kind_n whereof_o they_o consist_v but_o in_o respect_n to_o the_o spiritual_a communion_n which_o they_o exhibit_v and_o indeed_o when_o s._n ambrose_n say_v that_o after_o consecration_n the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o his_o blood_n only_o be_v name_v and_o signify_v and_o express_v this_o also_o seem_v to_o import_v a_o great_a abatement_n of_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v so_o call_v and_o name_v and_o signify_v to_o we_o not_o because_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o nature_n and_o kind_n be_v abolish_v but_o because_o it_o come_v no_o more_o into_o consideration_n as_o not_o concern_v the_o spiritual_a benefit_n of_o they_o that_o communicate_v which_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o church-writer_n continual_o call_v the_o element_n by_o the_o name_n of_o that_o which_o they_o exhibit_v without_o such_o addition_n as_o may_v import_v that_o abatement_n whereof_o now_o we_o speak_v who_o nevertheless_o otherwhiles_o stick_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o species_n of_o the_o element_n that_o be_v in_o their_o sense_n not_o the_o outward_a appearance_n of_o the_o accident_n as_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n disguise_n the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o latin_a word_n but_o the_o inward_a nature_n and_o substance_n of_o their_o kind_n do_v remain_v as_o it_o be_v it_o remain_v now_o to_o declare_v both_o the_o right_a purpose_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o that_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o all_o liturgy_n that_o i_o have_v see_v be_v make_v at_o consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n and_o before_o the_o receive_n of_o it_o in_o that_o which_o have_v be_v hitherto_o represent_v out_o of_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o in_o the_o most_o of_o the_o eastern_a liturgy_n immediate_o after_o the_o consecration_n hitherto_o describe_v the_o beginning_n of_o it_o there_o be_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d further_o we_o pray_v thou_o o_o lord_n for_o thy_o holy_a church_n from_o end_n to_o end_n which_o thou_o have_v purchase_v with_o the_o precious_a blood_n of_o thy_o christ_n that_o thou_o will_v keep_v it_o unmoved_a unwave_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o all_o bishop_n that_o divide_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n aright_o further_o we_o pray_v thou_o for_o the_o meanness_n of_o i_o that_o offer_v to_o thou_o for_o the_o whole_a presbytery_n for_o the_o deacon_n and_o all_o the_o clergy_n that_o further_n for_o the_o king_n and_o power_n that_o they_o may_v keep_v peace_n towards_o we_o further_o we_o offer_v to_o thou_o for_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o have_v please_v thou_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n further_n we_o pray_v thou_o for_o all_o this_o people_n reckon_v virgin_n widow_n marry_v and_o infant_n further_o we_o entreat_v for_o this_o city_n for_o the_o sick_a the_o banish_a slave_n traveller_n and_o those_o that_o be_v at_o home_n that_o further_n we_o pray_v thou_o for_o those_o that_o hate_v we_o and_o persecute_v we_o for_o thy_o name_n for_o those_o that_o be_v without_o and_o go_v astray_o
that_o further_n for_o the_o hearer_n the_o possess_a the_o penitent_n that_o further_n we_o offer_v to_o thou_o for_o seasonable_a weather_n and_o increase_v of_o fruit_n that_o further_n we_o pray_v thou_o for_o the_o absent_a for_o reasonable_a cause_n that_o in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o be_v immediate_o after_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v this_o prayer_n make_v in_o the_o liturgy_n attribute_v to_o s._n james_n s._n basil_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n in_o the_o same_o place_n in_o all_o the_o form_n relate_v under_o the_o name_n of_o ancient_a saint_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o missal_n of_o the_o maronites_n unless_o it_o be_v one_o but_o in_o the_o liturgy_n entitle_v to_o s._n mark_n this_o prayer_n be_v insert_v straight_o after_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o thanksgiving_n describe_v afore_o in_o the_o ethiopic_a immediate_o after_o the_o salutation_n of_o peace_n which_o in_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v always_o straight_o before_o the_o eucharist_n in_o that_o of_o s._n cyril_n among_o the_o three_o translate_v out_o of_o the_o arabic_a and_o mention_v afore_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o that_o of_o s._n mark_n from_o whence_o we_o may_v argue_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o course_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n by_o the_o agreement_n observe_v between_o those_o liturgy_n that_o be_v entitle_v to_o those_o that_o be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o the_o ethiopic_a depend_v upon_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o rest_n yet_o so_o it_o be_v also_o in_o that_o of_o the_o christian_n of_o s._n thomas_n in_o the_o east_n indies_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n this_o prayer_n seem_v of_o old_a to_o have_v go_v before_o the_o consecration_n for_o s._n ambrose_n describe_v the_o consecration_n say_v de_fw-fr sacram._n four_o 4._o oratio_fw-la praemittitur_fw-la pro_fw-la populo_fw-la pro_fw-la regibus_fw-la pro_fw-la caeteris_fw-la prayer_n be_v premise_v for_o the_o people_n for_o the_o king_n for_o the_o rest_n and_o s._n augustine_n epist_n lix_o eligo_fw-la in_o his_o verbis_fw-la hoc_fw-la intelligere_fw-la quod_fw-la omnis_fw-la vel_fw-la penè_fw-la omnis_fw-la frequentat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ut_fw-la precationes_fw-la accipiamus_fw-la dictas_fw-la quas_fw-la facimus_fw-la in_o celebratione_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la antequam_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la in_o domini_fw-la mensa_fw-la incipiat_fw-la benedici_fw-la orationes_fw-la cum_fw-la benedicitur_fw-la &_o sanctificatur_fw-la i_o choose_v to_o understand_v in_o these_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timothy_n 1._o two_o 1_o 2._o that_o which_o all_o or_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n frequent_v that_o we_o take_v those_o to_o be_v call_v supplication_n which_o we_o make_v at_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n before_o that_o which_o be_v on_o the_o lord_n board_n begin_v to_o be_v bless_v prayer_n when_o it_o be_v bless_v and_o sanctify_a for_o without_o peradventure_o these_o be_v the_o supplication_n for_o all_o state_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o he_o speak_v the_o order_n of_o this_o prayer_n in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v somewhat_o strange_a for_o he_o that_o will_v take_v notice_n of_o that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v after_o the_o same_o until_o the_o lord_n prayer_n compare_v all_o with_o the_o tenor_n of_o other_o liturgy_n may_v observe_v that_o they_o be_v all_o parcel_n of_o this_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n of_o christ_n church_n which_o here_o we_o describe_v and_o i_o observe_v that_o in_o that_o form_n which_o be_v entitle_v to_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o missal_n of_o the_o maronites_n this_o prayer_n be_v likewise_o make_v both_o before_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o after_o the_o same_o i_o be_o punctual_a in_o observe_v the_o tenor_n of_o several_a liturgy_n in_o this_o point_n to_o give_v notice_n that_o there_o be_v no_o ancient_a or_o pretend_a ancient_a form_n extant_a wherein_o prayer_n be_v not_o make_v by_o he_o that_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n at_o the_o lord_n board_n to_o this_o purpose_n a_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o somewhat_o strange_a that_o according_a to_o the_o general_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v afore_o prayer_n have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o people_n a_o little_a afore_o upon_o the_o same_o subject_n that_o be_v for_o all_o state_n of_o christ_n church_n though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o bid_v by_o the_o deacon_n and_o answer_v by_o the_o people_n the_o same_o prayer_n shall_v be_v again_o repeat_v by_o he_o that_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n at_o the_o lord_n board_n which_o be_v more_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n seem_v to_o have_v differ_v from_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o this_o prayer_n whereof_o we_o speak_v by_o s._n augustine_n word_n epist_n cvi_fw-la quando_fw-la audis_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la ad_fw-la altar_n exhortantem_fw-la populum_fw-la dei_fw-la or_o a_o pro_fw-la incredulis_fw-la ut_fw-la eos_fw-la deus_fw-la convertat_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la catechumenis_fw-la ut_fw-la eye_n desiderium_fw-la regenerationis_fw-la inspiret_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la quod_fw-la esse_fw-la coeperunt_fw-la ejus_fw-la munere_fw-la perseverent_fw-la when_o thou_o hear_v the_o priest_n at_o the_o altar_n exhort_v the_o people_n of_o god_n pray_v for_o the_o unbeliever_n that_o god_n will_v convert_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o hearer_n that_o he_o will_v inspire_v the_o desire_n of_o regeneration_n into_o they_o and_o for_o the_o faithful_a that_o by_o his_o grace_n they_o may_v persevere_v in_o that_o which_o they_o have_v begin_v to_o be_v compare_v we_o herewith_o his_o word_n that_o be_v read_v epist_n cxviii_o cap._n 18_o quando_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la tempus_fw-la cùm_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la fratres_fw-la congregantur_fw-la sancta_fw-la cantandi_fw-la nisi_fw-la cùm_fw-la legitur_fw-la aut_fw-la disputatur_fw-la aut_fw-la antistes_fw-la clarâ_fw-la voce_fw-la deprecatur_fw-la aut_fw-la communis_fw-la oratio_fw-la voce_fw-la diaconi_fw-la indicitur_fw-la when_o be_v it_o not_o time_n to_o sing_v holy_a song_n at_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o brethren_n in_o the_o church_n but_o in_o time_n of_o read_v or_o preach_v or_o when_o the_o bishop_n pray_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n or_o when_o common_a prayer_n be_v indict_v by_o the_o deacon_n voice_n again_o epist_n cvi_o vbi_fw-la audieritis_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la dei_fw-la adejus_fw-la altar_n exhortantem_fw-la populum_fw-la dei_fw-la aut_fw-la ipsum_fw-la clarâ_fw-la voce_fw-la or_o antem_fw-la ut_fw-la incredulas_fw-la gentes_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la svam_fw-la venire_fw-la compellat_fw-la non_fw-la respondetis_fw-la amen_o when_o you_o hear_v the_o priest_n of_o god_n at_o his_o altar_n exhort_v the_o people_n of_o god_n or_o himself_o pray_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n that_o he_o will_v compel_v unbelieving_a nation_n to_o his_o faith_n do_v you_o not_o answer_v amen_o when_o s._n augustine_n mention_v common_a prayer_n indict_v by_o the_o deacon_n voice_n he_o acknowledge_v the_o litany_n describe_v afore_o which_o justine_n martyr_n also_o call_v common_a prayer_n because_o they_o proceed_v from_o all_o the_o people_n to_o have_v be_v practise_v in_o the_o african_a church_n before_o the_o eucharist_n which_o notwithstanding_o by_o his_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o he_o which_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o same_o form_n be_v wont_a to_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o make_v this_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n of_o person_n unbeliever_n hearer_n believer_n for_o instance_n of_o the_o rest_n which_o be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o any_o of_o those_o liturgy_n which_o we_o have_v to_o my_o remembrance_n but_o he_o inform_v we_o beside_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o bishop_n exhort_v the_o people_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o same_o he_o pray_v for_o alone_o afterward_o and_o that_o prayer_n he_o mean_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n pray_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n it_o be_v hard_a for_o i_o to_o give_v account_n of_o this_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n otherwise_o then_o by_o conjecture_n thus_o much_o may_v be_v affirm_v with_o confidence_n that_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o prayer_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o the_o apostle_n instruction_n whereof_o our_o service_n speak_v who_o by_o thy_o holy_a apostle_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o make_v prayer_n and_o supplication_n and_o to_o give_v thanks_o for_o all_o man_n the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o tim._n two_o 1_o 2._o i_o exhort_v therefore_o that_o first_o of_o all_o supplication_n prayer_n intercession_n &_o give_v of_o thanks_o be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n for_o king_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o authority_n that_o we_o may_v lead_v a_o quiet_a and_o peaceable_a life_n in_o all_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n s._n ambrose_n upon_o these_o word_n haec_fw-la regula_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la tradita_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la magistro_fw-la gentium_fw-la this_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n which_o our_o
according_a to_o the_o apostle_n and_o if_o the_o question_n be_v further_o make_v concern_v offering_n for_o the_o dead_a it_o shall_v seem_v to_o i_o nothing_o improbable_a that_o because_o the_o apostle_n exhort_v that_o supplication_n and_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n and_o thanksgiving_n be_v make_v for_o all_o man_n therefore_o the_o ancient_a church_n enlarge_v the_o sense_n of_o that_o all_z man_n further_a than_o they_o need_v to_o do_v to_o comprise_v the_o dead_a as_o well_o as_o the_o live_n and_o that_o thence_o come_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o dead_a at_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o offering_n of_o the_o element_n that_o it_o may_v be_v celebrate_v and_o that_o such_o commemoration_n may_v be_v make_v though_o as_o concern_v the_o particular_n of_o the_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o ancient_a church_n how_o far_o they_o come_v from_o the_o scripture_n and_o how_o far_o from_o humane_a opinion_n in_o that_o whole_a matter_n i_o refer_v myself_o to_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v declare_v with_o so_o much_o learning_n by_o that_o excellent_a learned_a prelate_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o jesuit_n challenge_v in_o ireland_n as_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o service_n which_o the_o eucharist_n be_v celebrate_v with_o after_o the_o prayer_n hitherto_o describe_v there_o follow_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n a_o brief_a repetition_n of_o the_o litany_n with_o a_o prayer_n of_o the_o bishop_n that_o the_o congregation_n may_v worthy_o communicate_v in_o the_o time_n of_o communicate_v it_o be_v order_v there_o that_o the_o xxxiiii_o psalm_n be_v sing_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o word_n o_o taste_n and_o see_v how_o gracious_a the_o lord_n be_v in_o other_o of_o the_o eastern_a liturgy_n the_o xxiii_o xlii_o cxviii_o cxliu_o be_v prescribe_v the_o latin_a liturgist_n call_v the_o verse_n of_o psalm_n that_o be_v sing_v during_o the_o time_n of_o communicate_v communion_n and_o the_o prayer_n or_o thanksgiving_n that_o follow_v after_o the_o same_o postcommunion_n such_o a_o form_n of_o thanksgiving_n there_o be_v extant_a in_o all_o liturgy_n the_o people_n be_v dismiss_v with_o the_o benediction_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o constitution_n which_o benediction_n come_v after_o the_o consecration_n before_o the_o communion_n in_o the_o most_o of_o other_o liturgy_n i_o will_v here_o repeat_v that_o whole_a passage_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o beginning_n whereof_o be_v produce_v afore_o for_o it_o contain_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o these_o remain_v whereof_o we_o speak_v ep._n lix_o eligo_fw-la in_o his_o verbis_fw-la hoc_fw-la intelligere_fw-la quod_fw-la omnis_fw-la vel_fw-la penè_fw-la omnis_fw-la frequentat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ut_fw-la precationes_fw-la accipiamus_fw-la dictas_fw-la quas_fw-la facimus_fw-la in_o celebratione_fw-la sacramentorum_fw-la antequam_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la in_o domini_fw-la mensa_fw-la incipiat_fw-la benedici_fw-la orationes_fw-la cùm_fw-la benedicitur_fw-la &_o sanctificatur_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la distribuendum_fw-la comminuitur_fw-la quam_fw-la totam_fw-la petitionem_fw-la ferè_fw-la omnis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la dominicâ_fw-la oratione_fw-la concludit_fw-la interpellationes_fw-la autem_fw-la sive_fw-la ut_fw-la vestri_fw-la codices_fw-la habent_fw-la postulationes_fw-la fiunt_fw-la cùm_fw-la populus_fw-la benedicitur_fw-la tunc_fw-la enim_fw-la antistites_fw-la velut_fw-la advocati_fw-la susceptos_fw-la suos_fw-la per_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositionem_fw-la misericordissimae_fw-la offerunt_fw-la potestati_fw-la quo_fw-la facto_fw-la &_o participato_fw-la tanto_fw-la sacramento_n gratiarum_fw-la actio_fw-la cuncta_fw-la concludit_fw-la i_o choose_v to_o understand_v in_o these_o word_n that_o which_o all_o or_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n frequent_v that_o we_o conceive_v those_o to_o be_v call_v supplication_n which_o we_o make_v at_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n before_o that_o which_o be_v on_o the_o lord_n board_n begin_v to_o be_v bless_v prayer_n when_o it_o be_v bless_v and_o sanctify_a and_o break_v to_o be_v distribute_v which_o petition_v almost_o all_o the_o church_n conclude_v with_o the_o lord_n prayer_n so_o it_o be_v in_o all_o form_n that_o be_v extant_a and_o it_o be_v another_o mark_n that_o they_o be_v prescript_n but_o intercession_n or_o as_o your_o book_n have_v it_o request_n be_v make_v when_o the_o people_n be_v bless_v for_o then_o the_o bishop_n as_o advocate_n receive_v their_o people_n offer_v they_o to_o the_o most_o merciful_a power_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n which_o do_v and_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n participate_v all_o conclude_v with_o thanksgiving_n the_o ciii_o of_o the_o african_a canon_n relate_v afore_o placuit_fw-la etiam_fw-la illud_fw-la ut_fw-la preces_fw-la quae_fw-la probatae_fw-la fuerint_fw-la in_o concilio_n sive_fw-la praefationes_fw-la sive_fw-la commendationes_fw-la seu_fw-la manuum_fw-la impositiones_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la celebrentur_fw-la it_o seem_v that_o the_o benediction_n of_o the_o bishop_n or_o presbyter_n that_o celebrate_v to_o who_o this_o office_n also_o belong_v as_o s._n hierome_n contend_v whereof_o we_o speak_v be_v call_v here_o commendation_n or_o imposition_n of_o hand_n to_o say_v prayer_n to_o commend_v the_o people_n to_o god_n with_o imposition_n of_o hand_n unless_o by_o these_o commendation_n we_o understand_v those_o prayer_n for_o all_o man_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n wherewith_o the_o several_a estate_n of_o all_o man_n especial_o of_o the_o church_n be_v commend_v to_o god_n which_o say_v s._n augustine_n go_v before_o the_o sanctify_a of_o the_o element_n in_o the_o anaphora_fw-la of_o s._n basil_n publish_v by_o masius_n out_o of_o the_o syriack_n there_o be_v this_o prayer_n at_o the_o beginning_n before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n extend_v domine_fw-la manum_fw-la tuam_fw-la non_fw-la asspectabilem_fw-la &_o benedic_fw-la seruis_fw-la &_o ancillis_fw-la tuis_fw-la mundatóque_fw-la ipsos_fw-la ab_fw-la omni_fw-la macula_fw-la carnis_fw-la &_o spiritûs_fw-la at_o que_fw-la dignare_fw-la ipsosfieri_fw-la participes_fw-la corporis_fw-la unigeniti_fw-la filii_fw-la tui_fw-la the_o people_n bow_v the_o head_n at_o receive_v this_o blessing_n the_o bishop_n hold_v his_o hand_n over_o they_o as_o a_o sign_n of_o god_n hand_n stretch_v out_o to_o bless_v therefore_o he_o say_v extend_v o_o lord_n thy_o invisible_a hand_n and_o bless_v thy_o servant_n and_o handmaid_n and_o cleanse_v they_o from_o all_o stain_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n and_o deign_v they_o to_o become_v partaker_n of_o the_o body_n of_o thy_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o confession_n of_o sin_n at_o beginning_n of_o the_o mass_n have_v be_v say_v after_o the_o consecration_n the_o benediction_n be_v contain_v in_o these_o word_n pax_fw-la domini_fw-la sit_fw-la semper_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la the_o peace_n of_o god_n be_v with_o you_o always_o you_o shall_v see_v how_o luther_n understand_v it_o in_o his_o form_n of_o communion_n of_o the_o year_n mdxxiii_o quae_fw-la est_fw-la quaedam_fw-la quasi_fw-la publica_fw-la absolutio_fw-la à_fw-la peccatis_fw-la communicantium_fw-la vox_fw-la planè_fw-la evangelica_n annuncian_n remissionem_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la unica_fw-la illa_fw-la ac_fw-la dignissima_fw-la ad_fw-la mensam_fw-la domini_fw-la praeparatio_fw-la si_fw-la fide_fw-la apprehendatur_fw-la non_fw-la secus_fw-la at_o que_fw-la ex_fw-la ore_fw-la christi_fw-la prolata_fw-la which_o be_v say_v he_o a_o kind_n of_o public_a absolution_n of_o they_o that_o communicate_v from_o their_o sin_n the_o very_a voice_n of_o the_o gospel_n pronounce_v remission_n of_o sin_n the_o only_o fit_a preparation_n to_o the_o lord_n board_n if_o apprehend_v by_o faith_n as_o out_o of_o christ_n mouth_n but_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v account_v a_o benediction_n because_o as_o have_v be_v say_v confession_n of_o sin_n and_o prayer_n for_o pardon_n upon_o the_o same_o be_v make_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o s._n basil_n which_o we_o have_v translate_v out_o of_o the_o arabic_a at_o the_o beginning_n prayer_n be_v make_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n at_o large_a upon_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o sin_n you_o remit_v the_o like_a prayer_n be_v make_v there_o after_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o ethiopic_a prayer_n be_v make_v before_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n to_o like_a purpose_n though_o corrupt_v with_o that_o superstition_n which_o ignorance_n breed_v this_o seem_v most_o answerable_a to_o that_o confession_n of_o sin_n which_o our_o service_n use_v before_o the_o eucharist_n otherwise_o it_o be_v to_o be_v grant_v that_o in_o most_o liturgy_n that_o which_o seem_v to_o keep_v most_o correspondence_n with_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o benediction_n than_o confession_n with_o prayer_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n it_o remain_v that_o from_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v we_o give_v account_n of_o that_o form_n of_o service_n which_o we_o use_v derive_v it_o high_o than_o the_o mass_n from_o which_o it_o be_v charge_v to_o come_v as_o contain_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v find_v there_o though_o not_o all_o that_o be_v there_o and_o show_v where_o it_o shall_v be_v requisite_a that_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v lay_v aside_o in_o it_o
how_o just_a this_o charge_n be_v may_v appear_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o sin_n which_o it_o begin_v with_o be_v it_o enough_o to_o condemn_v any_o part_n of_o our_o service_n to_o say_v that_o the_o like_a be_v use_v in_o the_o breviary_n and_o mass_n then_o must_v we_o condemn_v almost_o all_o reform_a church_n that_o use_v confession_n of_o sin_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o service_n as_o the_o breviary_n and_o mass_n do_v du_n plessis_n think_v otherwise_o like_o a_o man_n of_o learning_n as_o well_o as_o nobility_n he_o see_v it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o some_o antiquity_n in_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o france_n that_o confession_n of_o sin_n which_o they_o use_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v and_o have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o mass_n and_o this_o ancient_a use_n a_o advantage_n to_o recommend_v it_o and_o we_o have_v cause_n to_o see_v that_o though_o it_o be_v not_o use_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o service_n where_o hearer_n and_o penitent_n be_v dismiss_v in_o the_o middle_n yet_o the_o alteration_n of_o time_n have_v bring_v that_o to_o nothing_o we_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o balk_v it_o at_o the_o beginning_n though_o it_o be_v there_o use_v in_o the_o breviary_n and_o mass_n he_o that_o will_v use_v a_o little_a judgement_n and_o conscience_n must_v distinguish_v between_o a_o form_n of_o public_a service_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o mass_n pin_v to_o it_o between_o that_o which_o we_o follow_v and_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o follow_v it_o if_o by_o do_v that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o mass_n we_o retain_v the_o corruption_n of_o it_o it_o be_v time_n it_o be_v do_v no_o more_o if_o any_o man_n will_v not_o have_v we_o do_v that_o aright_o which_o tend_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n because_o in_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v do_v amiss_o we_o be_v bid_v to_o our_o loss_n the_o reason_n why_o we_o begin_v with_o confession_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o to_o be_v fault_v both_o because_o daily_a sin_n accrue_v daily_o upon_o the_o congregation_n and_o member_n of_o it_o and_o daily_a reckon_n not_o daily_o clear_v oppress_v in_o the_o end_n and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o mean_n as_o the_o public_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n to_o strike_v they_o clear_a and_o particular_o as_o a_o entrance_n and_o preparation_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n because_o if_o our_o confession_n be_v such_o as_o it_o must_v be_v presume_v to_o be_v it_o be_v the_o only_a sufficient_a disposition_n to_o make_v our_o service_n acceptable_a to_o god_n that_o which_o this_o church_n of_o england_n be_v to_o give_v account_n of_o in_o particular_a be_v the_o declaration_n of_o forgiveness_n upon_o the_o confession_n of_o sin_n not_o use_v in_o other_o reform_a church_n in_o this_o he_o shall_v proceed_v upon_o the_o sure_a ground_n that_o first_o shall_v resolve_v wherein_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o retain_v and_o remit_v sin_n give_v by_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n under_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o key_n of_o his_o house_n consist_v and_o how_o far_o it_o extend_v for_o as_o there_o be_v no_o question_n that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n by_o this_o commission_n be_v authorize_v to_o declare_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n to_o whosoever_o they_o shall_v find_v dispose_v by_o serious_a contrition_n and_o true_a faith_n to_o receive_v it_o at_o god_n hand_n so_o to_o think_v that_o to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o declare_v they_o bind_v or_o loose_v remit_v or_o retain_v and_o that_o the_o charge_v whereof_o we_o speak_v consist_v in_o declare_v this_o and_o nothing_o else_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o the_o property_n of_o no_o language_n will_v bear_v see_v that_o in_o all_o use_n of_o speech_n all_o man_n understand_v it_o to_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v to_o retain_v and_o remit_v sin_n another_o thing_n to_o declare_v that_o yet_o be_v it_o no_o part_n of_o my_o mind_n to_o make_v this_o power_n of_o the_o key_n by_o which_o sin_n be_v bind_v or_o remit_v to_o consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o forgiveness_n which_o god_n ratifi_v as_o rest_v well_o assure_v that_o god_n give_v pardon_n to_o whosoever_o he_o see_v dispose_v to_o receive_v it_o and_o that_o thence_o forth_o that_o disposition_n be_v bring_v to_o pass_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o key_n consist_v only_o in_o declare_v the_o pardon_n give_v by_o god_n it_o seem_v nevertheless_o that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o key_n be_v former_o see_v otherwise_o that_o be_v in_o procure_v that_o disposition_n of_o the_o heart_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o make_v man_n capable_a of_o forgiveness_n in_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o sin_n in_o direct_v the_o course_n which_o they_o have_v to_o take_v in_o seek_v their_o reconcilement_n with_o god_n the_o discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n seem_v to_o point_v out_o to_o we_o this_o direct_a meaning_n of_o our_o lord_n promise_v agreeable_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o firmilianus_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n cappadocia_n to_o s._n cyprian_n in_o the_o lxxv_o of_o his_o epistle_n produce_v elsewhere_o non_fw-la quasi_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la delictorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la veniam_fw-la consequantur_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la no●_n ad_fw-la delictorum_fw-la suorum_fw-la intelligentiam_fw-la convertantur_fw-la &_o domino_fw-la pleniùs_fw-la satisfacere_fw-la cogantur_fw-la not_o as_o if_o they_o procure_v the_o pardon_n of_o their_o fault_n at_o our_o hand_n say_v he_o but_o that_o by_o we_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v to_o understand_v their_o fault_n and_o constrain_v to_o make_v more_o full_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o lord_n how_o he_o mean_v that_o man_n be_v convert_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o fault_n to_o god_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o his_o minister_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o tertullia_n word_n apologet._n c._n thirty-nine_o speak_v thus_o of_o their_o assembly_n ibidem_fw-la etiam_fw-la exhortationes_fw-la castigationes_fw-la &_o censura_fw-la divin●_n no_o &_o judicatur_fw-la magno_fw-la cum_fw-la pondere_fw-la ut_fw-la apud_fw-la certos_fw-la de_fw-la dei_fw-la conspectu_fw-la summúmque_fw-la futuri_fw-la judicii_fw-la praejudicium_fw-la siquis_fw-la ità_fw-la deliquerit_fw-la ut_fw-la à_fw-la communicatione_n orationis_fw-la &_o convertû_n &_o omnis_fw-la sancti_fw-la commercii_fw-la relegetur_fw-la there_o also_o be_v exhortation_n reproof_n and_o the_o censure_n of_o god_n for_o first_o judgement_n be_v give_v with_o great_a weight_n as_o among_o man_n assure_v of_o god_n sight_n and_o than_o it_o be_v the_o great_a prejudice_n of_o the_o judgement_n to_o come_v if_o a_o man_n fail_v so_o as_o to_o be_v confine_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o prayer_n &_o assembly_n and_o all_o holy_a commerce_n it_o be_v not_o the_o mere_a preach_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o that_o bring_v man_n to_o acknowledge_v their_o offence_n according_a to_o firmilianus_n tertullian_n show_v it_o be_v the_o exhortation_n the_o reproof_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v employ_v to_o that_o purpose_n by_o who_o it_o follow_v there_o president_n probati_fw-la quique_fw-la seniores_fw-la the_o precedent_n be_v all_o the_o approve_a elder_n the_o bishop_n who_o we_o have_v see_v he_o acknowledge_v elsewhere_o and_o his_o presbyter_n and_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n of_o firmilianus_n omnis_fw-la potestas_fw-la &_o gratia_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la constituta_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la president_n majores_fw-la natu_fw-la qui_fw-la &_o baptizandi_fw-la &_o manuum_fw-la imponendi_fw-la &_o ordinandi_fw-la habent_fw-la potestatem_fw-la all_o power_n and_o favour_n be_v estate_v upon_o the_o church_n the_o precedent_n whereof_o be_v the_o elder_n which_o have_v power_n both_o to_o baptize_v and_o to_o impose_v hand_n in_o penance_n and_o to_o ordain_v it_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o write_v this_o the_o exhortation_n the_o reproof_n the_o censure_n by_o which_o man_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o sight_n and_o acknowledgement_n of_o their_o fault_n and_o constrain_v to_o the_o due_a course_n of_o humiliation_n for_o procure_v forgiveness_n be_v minister_v at_o their_o assembly_n but_o by_o the_o precedent_n the_o mean_n of_o forgiveness_n minister_v in_o the_o discipline_n of_o penance_n consist_v in_o the_o party_n repentance_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n penance_n be_v not_o prescribe_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n only_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o scandal_n of_o bad_a example_n those_o that_o imagine_v this_o shall_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o mention_n of_o it_o in_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n but_o they_o shall_v find_v their_o mistake_n convince_v it_o be_v to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n offend_v and_o to_o recover_v his_o favour_n again_o which_o be_v in_o firmilianus_n his_o term_n to_o make_v
satisfaction_n to_o god_n not_o in_o the_o senseless_a and_o impious_a sense_n of_o the_o now_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v he_o recompense_v for_o the_o debt_n of_o punishment_n incur_v but_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n in_o good_a latin_a to_o appease_v his_o wrath_n with_o true_a sorrow_n and_o with_o cordial_a contrition_n to_o seek_v reconcilement_n imposition_n of_o hand_n be_v not_o use_v once_o in_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o forgiveness_n but_o always_o at_o public_a service_n during_o the_o prescript_n time_n of_o penance_n those_o of_o that_o state_n after_o the_o earnest_a prayer_n of_o the_o congregation_n for_o their_o pardon_n come_v and_o kneel_v afore_o the_o bishop_n hold_v his_o hand_n over_o their_o head_n with_o his_o blessing_n and_o prayer_n for_o that_o purpose_n be_v dismiss_v afore_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v call_v on_o their_o part_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o fall_v down_o on_o his_o part_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o imposition_n of_o hand_n in_o penance_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o these_o mean_n of_o forgiveness_n the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v see_v in_o rhenanus_fw-la his_o argument_n to_o tertullia_n book_n de_fw-la poenit._fw-la be_v to_o be_v find_v divers_a remarkable_a thing_n to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o the_o penitential_o of_o theodulphus_n of_o orleans_n and_o theodore_n of_o canterbury_n out_o of_o s._n basil_n and_o tertullian_n that_o confession_n to_o god_n be_v that_o which_o cleanse_v sin_n but_o confession_n to_o the_o church_n be_v to_o the_o purpose_n of_o learning_n the_o course_n man_n be_v to_o hold_v in_o seek_v pardon_n and_o obtain_v the_o prayer_n of_o the_o church_n to_o that_o purpose_n beside_o this_o i_o find_v that_o s._n cyprian_n have_v place_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n his_o word_n be_v these_o epist_n lxxiii_o manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la autem_fw-la ubi_fw-la &_o per_fw-la quos_fw-la remissa_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la dari_fw-la possit_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o baptismo_fw-la scilicet_fw-la datur_fw-la nam_fw-la petro_n primùm_fw-la dominus_fw-la super_fw-la quem_fw-la aedificavit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la &_o unde_fw-la unitatis_fw-la originem_fw-la instituit_fw-la &_o ostendit_fw-la potestatem_fw-la istam_fw-la dedit_fw-la ut_fw-la id_fw-la solveretur_fw-la in_o coelis_fw-la quod_fw-la ille_fw-la solvisset_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la now_o it_o be_v manifest_v where_o and_o by_o who_o remission_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v give_v i_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v give_v in_o baptism_n for_o unto_o peter_n upon_o who_o he_o build_v the_o church_n and_o from_o who_o he_o appoint_v and_o express_v the_o original_n of_o unity_n our_o lord_n at_o first_o give_v this_o power_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n which_o he_o loose_v on_o earth_n and_o by_o and_o by_o afterward_o vnde_fw-la intelligimus_fw-la non_fw-la nisi_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la praepositis_fw-la &_o in_o evangelica_n lege_fw-la ac_fw-la dominica_fw-la ordinatione_fw-la fundatis_fw-la licere_fw-la baptizare_fw-la &_o remissam_fw-la peccatorum_fw-la dare_v whence_o we_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a but_o for_o those_o that_o be_v set_v over_o the_o church_n and_o found_v upon_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o baptize_v and_o give_v remission_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n as_o be_v give_v by_o the_o power_n which_o s._n peter_n receive_v under_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o key_n of_o god_n church_n i_o find_v further_o that_o primasius_n a_o scholar_n of_o s._n augustine_n seem_v to_o place_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o apoc._n viij_o 3._o a_o thing_n somewhat_o strange_a to_o make_v the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v all_o one_o with_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o it_o go_v before_o the_o minister_a of_o they_o to_o discern_v how_o fit_a they_o be_v for_o they_o that_o pretend_v and_o to_o constrain_v they_o to_o the_o mean_n which_o make_v they_o capable_a of_o forgiveness_n it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o follow_v there_o in_o s._n cyprian_n speak_v of_o rebaptise_v those_o that_o return_v from_o their_o heresy_n quapropter_fw-la qui_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o veritati_fw-la praesumus_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la ad_fw-la fidem_fw-la &_o veritatem_fw-la veniunt_fw-la &_o agentes_fw-la poenitentiam_fw-la remitti_fw-la sibi_fw-la peccata_fw-la postulant_fw-la decipere_fw-la non_fw-la debemus_fw-la &_o fallere_fw-la sed_fw-la correctos_fw-la à_fw-la nobis_fw-la ac_fw-la reformatos_fw-la ad_fw-la regnum_fw-la coelorum_fw-la disciplinis_fw-la coelestibus_fw-la erudire_fw-la therefore_o we_o that_o be_v over_o the_o faith_n and_o truth_n must_v not_o deceive_v nor_o cozen_v those_o that_o come_v to_o the_o faith_n and_o truth_n and_o do_v penance_n desire_v their_o sin_n to_o be_v remit_v but_o instruct_v they_o amend_v and_o reform_v by_o we_o to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n with_o heavenly_a discipline_n they_o that_o return_v from-heresy_n seek_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o repentance_n his_o opinion_n be_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v without_o a_o second_o baptism_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v he_o make_v to_o consist_v in_o prescribe_v repentance_n and_o admit_v they_o to_o baptism_n upon_o repentance_n so_o that_o in_o sum_n he_o shall_v seem_v most_o sufficient_o to_o comprise_v the_o whole_a charge_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v that_o shall_v make_v it_o to_o consist_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o those_o mean_n which_o dispose_v man_n to_o be_v capable_a of_o remission_n of_o sin_n in_o which_o regard_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v say_v with_o as_o much_o property_n of_o speech_n to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v as_o the_o physician_n be_v say_v to_o cure_v those_o disease_n in_o which_o he_o do_v no_o more_o but_o prescribe_v or_o apply_v the_o remedy_n but_o no_o man_n doubt_v but_o this_o office_n as_o it_o be_v appoint_v in_o respect_n of_o god_n to_o procure_v pardon_n so_o it_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o conscience_n to_o assure_v it_o which_o assurance_n as_o it_o be_v warrantable_a for_o they_o to_o give_v that_o have_v see_v the_o course_n perform_v which_o they_o be_v entrust_v to_o prescribe_v so_o be_v it_o due_a for_o he_o to_o receive_v that_o have_v perform_v it_o suppose_v then_o we_o leave_v it_o questionable_a as_o not_o to_o be_v dispute_v in_o this_o place_n what_o sin_n be_v to_o come_v under_o the_o discipline_n of_o penance_n either_o of_o necessity_n or_o for_o a_o sure_a course_n of_o procure_v their_o pardon_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n do_v continual_o remember_v with_o remorse_n and_o bitterness_n of_o spirit_n the_o sin_n which_o they_o commit_v of_o old_a and_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o man_n daily_a offence_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o so_o solemn_a a_o cure_n so_o great_a be_v the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o man_n mind_n to_o attend_v they_o in_o particular_a and_o as_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n so_o powerful_a to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o they_o as_o the_o daily_a prayer_n of_o the_o congregation_n to_o that_o purpose_n so_o that_o the_o course_n which_o the_o church_n prescribe_v for_o the_o pardon_n of_o daily_a offence_n be_v put_v in_o practice_n what_o can_v be_v more_o just_a more_o due_a then_o to_o declare_v that_o forgiveness_n which_o those_o that_o dissemble_v not_o those_o that_o be_v as_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v do_v attain_v what_o more_o comfortable_a then_o to_o hear_v the_o news_n of_o it_o from_o his_o mouth_n by_o who_o the_o church_n minister_v the_o office_n what_o more_o seasonable_a then_o to_o do_v this_o before_o we_o come_v to_o praise_n god_n and_o hear_v his_o word_n that_o we_o may_v persuade_v our_o heart_n that_o he_o accept_v this_o service_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o they_o that_o hate_v not_o to_o reform_v themselves_o in_o this_o consideration_n i_o must_v needs_o prefer_v the_o order_n of_o this_o church_n of_o england_n before_o that_o of_o other_o reform_a church_n in_o that_o we_o put_v confession_n of_o sin_n in_o the_o first_o place_n of_o our_o service_n they_o refer_v it_o till_o after_o the_o psalm_n &_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n when_o the_o preacher_n go_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n they_o reckon_v they_o as_o needs_o they_o must_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o service_n and_o du_n plessis_n have_v plead_v they_o as_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o show_v that_o their_o service_n come_v near_a that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n than_o the_o mass_n but_o beginning_n as_o they_o do_v without_o solemn_a confession_n of_o sin_n before_o they_o give_v the_o people_n occasion_n to_o esteem_v they_o otherwise_o then_o the_o service_n of_o god_n as_o take_v up_o mere_o to_o while_o out_o
the_o time_n while_o the_o people_n assemble_v whereas_o the_o solemn_a beginning_n of_o our_o service_n with_o confession_n of_o sin_n serve_v to_o put_v the_o people_n in_o mind_n that_o it_o be_v all_o the_o solemn_a service_n of_o god_n that_o follow_v and_o of_o the_o attention_n of_o mind_n and_o devotion_n of_o spirit_n which_o they_o owe_v it_o by_o the_o preparation_n of_o confess_v and_o put_v away_o sin_n requisite_a to_o make_v it_o acceptable_a the_o more_o have_v they_o to_o answer_v for_o that_o make_v it_o their_o employment_n to_o extinguish_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n that_o respect_n to_o this_o part_n of_o god_n service_n which_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n have_v labour_v to_o procure_v and_o with_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n have_v procure_v have_v not_o their_o peevishness_n be_v that_o will_v not_o have_v god_n serve_v unless_o it_o be_v that_o way_n they_o like_v whatsoever_o honour_n the_o praise_n of_o god_n reverent_o and_o attentive_o perform_v may_v have_v yield_v he_o whatsoever_o good_a fruit_n the_o learning_n of_o his_o scripture_n may_v have_v bring_v forth_o in_o his_o people_n be_v with_o justice_n to_o be_v require_v at_o their_o hand_n that_o have_v be_v the_o mean_n to_o intercept_v it_o by_o the_o unjust_a disgrace_n which_o they_o have_v stick_v upon_o the_o settle_a order_n of_o this_o service_n now_o as_o concern_v the_o ancient_n and_o general_a course_n of_o god_n praise_n and_o read_v the_o scripture_n it_o appear_v by_o justine_n martyr_n and_o tertullian_n that_o the_o order_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o church_n be_v arbitrary_a in_o their_o time_n as_o accommodate_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n and_o occasion_n of_o their_o assembly_n by_o the_o guide_v of_o several_a church_n the_o one_o of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o far_o as_o occasion_n serve_v the_o other_o word_n be_v these_o apologer_n c._n thirty-nine_o coimus_fw-la ad_fw-la literarum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la commemorationem_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la praesentium_fw-la temporum_fw-la qualit_fw-la as_o aut_fw-la praemonere_fw-la cogit_fw-la aut_fw-la recognoscere_fw-la we_o assemble_v to_o repeat_v the_o scripture_n of_o god_n not_o like_o those_o that_o will_v not_o assemble_v till_o they_o be_v read_v what_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o present_a time_n enforce_v either_o to_o forewarn_v or_o to_o recognize_v the_o ordér_n which_o be_v accommodate_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o time_n can_v be_v certain_a and_o appoint_v afore_o the_o reason_n why_o a_o set_a order_n in_o these_o part_n of_o public_a service_n be_v now_o prefer_v before_o the_o disposition_n of_o the_o guide_n of_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n be_v the_o same_o for_o which_o man_n choose_v to_o live_v by_o positive_a law_n rather_o than_o by_o the_o will_n of_o their_o ruler_n though_o if_o man_n be_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o they_o may_v cut_v straight_a by_o the_o thread_n of_o justice_n apply_v right_a reason_n to_o the_o case_n then_o rule_v their_o proceed_n by_o a_o general_a that_o be_v not_o build_v upon_o the_o particular_a the_o order_n may_v be_v better_a be_v it_o leave_v to_o particular_a dispose_n but_o the_o course_n of_o the_o world_n enforce_v to_o presume_v that_o it_o will_v be_v for_o the_o worse_o beside_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n by_o a_o set_a order_n we_o attain_v uniformity_n with_o other_o church_n to_o help_v towards_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a we_o avoid_v dispute_n about_o what_o be_v most_o fit_a which_o in_o matter_n of_o this_o probable_a nature_n must_v needs_o be_v endless_a we_o avoid_v jealousy_n and_o umbrage_n upon_o that_o which_o be_v not_o customable_a what_o this_o amount_n to_o s._n augustine_n experience_n may_v teach_v we_o serm._n cxliu_o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la volueram_fw-la aliquando_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la singulos_fw-la annos_fw-la secundùm_fw-la omnes_fw-la evangelist_n as_o etiam_fw-la passio_fw-la legeretur_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la audierunt_fw-la homines_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la consueverunt_fw-la &_o perturbati_fw-la sunt_fw-la i_o have_v once_o a_o desire_n that_o every_o year_n the_o passion_n also_o as_o the_o resurrection_n in_o easter-week_n shall_v be_v read_v according_a to_o all_o the_o evangelist_n it_o be_v do_v man_n hear_v what_o they_o have_v not_o wont_a to_o hear_v and_o be_v trouble_v how_o unjust_a the_o charge_n of_o the_o mass_n upon_o our_o service_n be_v have_v appear_v in_o the_o first_o point_n of_o it_o how_o untrue_a it_o be_v will_v appear_v in_o the_o next_o that_o be_v in_o the_o order_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n at_o the_o daily_a morning_n and_o evening_n service_n for_o if_o because_o the_o breviarie_n and_o mass_n contain_v a_o certain_a order_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n therefore_o all_o order_n of_o psalm_n and_o lesson_n to_o that_o purpose_n be_v derive_v from_o the_o breviarie_n and_o mass_n and_o chargeable_a with_o the_o corruption_n of_o they_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o ancient_a church_n before_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o breviarie_n or_o mass_n that_o be_v either_o form_n of_o public_a service_n in_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o that_o profess_v this_o or_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n as_o the_o mass_n import_v the_o corruption_n of_o public_a service_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o apostle_n when_o public_a service_n consist_v of_o the_o same_o ingredient_n as_o have_v be_v show_v and_o the_o order_n of_o they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o s._n paul_n rule_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n but_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o clamour_n be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o same_o order_n of_o go_v over_o the_o psalter_n once_o a_o month_n at_o daily_a morning_n and_o evening_n service_n of_o go_v over_o the_o bible_n or_o all_o the_o most_o convenient_a of_o it_o once_o a_o year_n be_v the_o order_n of_o the_o breviarie_n and_o mass_n it_o may_v concern_v all_o man_n either_o of_o honesty_n or_o shame_n though_o not_o to_o look_v into_o the_o breviarie_n or_o mass_n of_o which_o they_o be_v so_o confident_a yet_o to_o look_v upon_o the_o preface_n of_o this_o our_o service_n which_o they_o condemn_v without_o understanding_n and_o think_v whether_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n will_v use_v all_o those_o excellent_a reason_n to_o excuse_v the_o alteration_n of_o that_o course_n which_o now_o they_o be_v accuse_v for_o retain_v but_o grant_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v so_o apparent_o false_a be_v the_o mass_n worse_o than_o it_o be_v and_o all_o this_o the_o very_a order_n contain_v in_o it_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n or_o conscience_n shall_v think_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v in_o the_o breviarie_n or_o mass_n and_o never_o trouble_v himself_o to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v part_n of_o the_o corruption_n which_o they_o contain_v what_o reason_n be_v there_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o psalter_n once_o a_o month_n be_v not_o for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o his_o church_n this_o church_n abolish_v not_o the_o use_n of_o psalm_n to_o musical_a tune_n where_o they_o may_v have_v place_n in_o the_o course_n of_o our_o service_n be_v it_o demand_v further_o that_o the_o monthly_a course_n of_o the_o psalter_n be_v abolish_v to_o make_v they_o room_n if_o it_o be_v the_o church_n be_v bid_v to_o loss_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n shall_v suffer_v in_o it_o the_o people_n be_v now_o more_o plentiful_o conduct_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o his_o praise_n according_a to_o his_o own_o word_n then_o the_o rude_a sort_n shall_v have_v much_o ado_n to_o dream_v over_o a_o psalm_n in_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o time_n in_o a_o manner_n so_o far_o from_o that_o decency_n to_o which_o it_o pretend_v as_o may_v be_v a_o just_a mean_n to_o dead_a the_o devotion_n of_o such_o as_o be_v not_o set_v upon_o a_o good_a edge_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o people_n represent_v in_o some_o sort_n that_o most_o ancient_a and_o commendable_a fashion_n of_o antiphones_n and_o teach_v they_o their_o office_n and_o conduct_v they_o to_o bear_v their_o part_n in_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n not_o to_o sit_v by_o as_o hearer_n where_o they_o be_v to_o be_v actor_n and_o where_o that_o fashion_n may_v be_v represent_v to_o the_o truth_n in_o the_o more_o skilful_a congregation_n of_o collegiate_n and_o cathedral_n church_n what_o a_o strange_a prejudice_n be_v it_o that_o will_v not_o suffer_v reasonable_a person_n to_o relish_v the_o advantage_n of_o it_o in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n but_o all_o this_o afford_v no_o ground_n to_o condemn_v the_o course_n of_o those_o more_o skilful_a congregation_n of_o collegiate_n and_o cathedral_n
church_n in_o sing_v the_o hymn_n with_o music_n provide_v the_o congregation_n may_v understand_v and_o go_v along_o in_o their_o devotion_n he_o that_o undertake_v to_o do_v it_o shall_v be_v sure_a to_o run_v upon_o a_o rock_n from_o which_o he_o shall_v not_o come_v off_o without_o split_v that_o be_v the_o precedent_n of_o the_o public_a service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o temple_n for_o let_v no_o man_n think_v that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v rank_v with_o the_o figurative_a service_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n that_o he_o must_v leave_v to_o the_o inner_a court_n of_o priest_n the_o praise_n of_o god_n be_v part_n of_o the_o perpetual_a service_n of_o god_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n to_o last_v under_o the_o gospel_n institute_v and_o indict_v by_o the_o prophet_n minister_n of_o that_o service_n frequent_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o a_o precedent_n for_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o edification_n of_o it_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o repeat_v here_o the_o needless_a quarrel_n with_o the_o old_a translation_n of_o the_o psalm_n in_o use_n man_n seem_v now_o to_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o see_v the_o shameless_a partiality_n which_o they_o contain_v in_o that_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o quick_a as_o to_o see_v so_o many_o fault_n in_o that_o and_o pass_v by_o all_o the_o extreme_a barbarisme_n the_o spurious_a addition_n the_o false_a translation_n which_o the_o psalm_n in_o metre_n contain_v i_o suppose_v the_o church_n intend_v not_o to_o aver_v all_o that_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v true_o translate_v if_o so_o god_n help_v the_o universal_a church_n when_o it_o have_v no_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o the_o greek_a and_o the_o translation_n of_o it_o let_v they_o that_o find_v fault_n employ_v themselves_o and_o all_o they_o can_v make_v to_o translate_v but_o that_o one_o book_n of_o psalm_n if_o they_o put_v their_o work_n past_o a_o considerable_a number_n of_o just_a exception_n i_o be_o ready_a to_o forfeit_v for_o one_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o my_o understanding_n and_o always_o be_v that_o what_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n be_v more_o fit_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o it_o then_o to_o go_v about_o to_o change_v it_o and_o what_o interest_n have_v any_o man_n not_o to_o desire_v change_n in_o that_o point_n but_o s._n augustine_n experience_n allege_v afore_o audierunt_fw-la homines_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la consueverunt_fw-la &_o perturbati_fw-la sunt_fw-la what_o will_v any_o man_n say_v now_o to_o the_o order_n of_o read_v the_o scripture_n once_o a_o year_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v this_o be_v the_o thanks_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o renew_v that_o religious_a order_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o provide_v a_o public_a course_n for_o the_o people_n to_o become_v acquaint_v with_o the_o scripture_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o the_o breviarie_n or_o mass_n the_o offence_n be_v because_o some_o of_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la be_v read_v before_o that_o offence_n have_v be_v take_v it_o shall_v have_v be_v show_v that_o nothing_o but_o that_o which_o be_v inspire_v by_o the_o h._n ghost_n shall_v be_v hear_v in_o the_o church_n what_o then_o will_v a_o number_n of_o good_a sermon_n become_v which_o how_o good_a soever_o no_o man_n dare_v say_v be_v inspire_v sure_o they_o that_o will_v advise_v with_o reason_n and_o conscience_n not_o with_o prejudice_n must_v inquire_v whether_o the_o read_n of_o they_o promote_v or_o hinder_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o respect_n so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o i_o to_o put_v out_o some_o apocrypha_fw-la that_o i_o will_v rather_o put_v in_o the_o first_o of_o maccabee_n as_o describe_v the_o fulfil_n of_o some_o of_o daniel_n prophecy_n and_o the_o than_o state_n of_o god_n people_n but_o be_v it_o from_o the_o mass_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n learn_v to_o restore_v the_o sermon_n into_o the_o due_a place_n at_o solemn_a service_n i_o shall_v have_v think_v it_o one_o of_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o mass_n that_o whereas_o by_o the_o universal_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o place_n of_o it_o appear_v there_o the_o use_n of_o it_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n silence_v the_o good_a order_n of_o this_o church_n and_o the_o success_n god_n have_v lend_v it_o have_v prevail_v so_o far_o that_o this_o apostolical_a order_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v recover_v the_o ancient_a place_n and_o rank_n as_o for_o the_o afternoon_n sermon_n i_o be_o yet_o to_o learn_v what_o place_n it_o have_v in_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n by_o what_o command_n of_o scripture_n what_o rule_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o be_v press_v timothy_n be_v command_v to_o be_v instant_a in_o season_n and_o out_o of_o season_n but_o to_o what_o purpose_n to_o publish_v the_o word_n to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n to_o win_v stranger_n to_o the_o faith_n how_o can_v that_o be_v importune_v so_o paul_n preach_v at_o troas_n till_o midnight_n if_o that_o be_v our_o precedent_n let_v we_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n as_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v on_o christmas_n eve_o there_o be_v example_n of_o preach_v as_o well_o evening_n as_o morning_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n but_o at_o particular_a time_n and_o on_o particular_a occasion_n my_o question_n be_v to_o show_v i_o the_o place_n of_o the_o sermon_n in_o the_o afternoon_n service_n as_o it_o have_v be_v show_v in_o the_o morning_n service_n otherwise_o not_o satisfy_v of_o any_o rule_n or_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n not_o because_o man_n law_n be_v not_o a_o fence_n to_o god_n law_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n the_o more_o it_o be_v frequent_v as_o it_o ought_v especial_o to_o the_o purpose_n that_o the_o people_n may_v sufficient_o understand_v their_o profession_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o but_o because_o it_o be_v reason_n that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v practise_v with_o respect_n to_o opportunity_n and_o ability_n not_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o may_v neither_o advance_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n nor_o of_o the_o profession_n which_o we_o make_v we_o hear_v no_o news_n of_o new_a reason_n against_o the_o creed_n for_o part_n of_o the_o service_n it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n to_o settle_v such_o form_n as_o may_v conclude_v and_o confine_v and_o bring_v to_o light_v the_o malice_n of_o heretic_n the_o next_o work_n to_o that_o be_v to_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o service_n so_o be_v it_o best_o commend_v to_o the_o knowledge_n to_o the_o respect_n of_o god_n people_n which_o respect_n have_v it_o be_v preserve_v this_o new_a varnish_n of_o old_a heresy_n which_o prevail_v so_o far_o abroad_o be_v not_o like_a to_o have_v take_v with_o the_o people_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o the_o collect_v or_o prayer_n which_o the_o daily_a service_n conclude_v with_o my_o proposition_n allow_v i_o not_o to_o dispute_v the_o particular_a conception_n or_o term_n in_o which_o they_o be_v express_v but_o i_o must_v commend_v the_o order_n of_o answer_n of_o the_o people_n in_o all_o place_n of_o the_o service_n where_o it_o stand_v it_o refresh_v their_o attention_n it_o teach_v they_o their_o part_n at_o public_a prayer_n not_o to_o stand_v by_o and_o censure_v how_o well_o the_o minister_n play_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o congregation_n if_o they_o be_v to_o act_v their_o part_n in_o it_o the_o part_n assign_v they_o in_o our_o service_n conduct_n they_o in_o do_v their_o office_n as_o for_o the_o subject_n of_o they_o the_o occasion_n of_o several_a season_n and_o solemnity_n protection_n against_o bodily_a and_o ghostly_a enemy_n conduct_v of_o god_n grace_n and_o providence_n success_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o guidance_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o like_a it_o be_v unknown_a to_o i_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v more_o fit_a and_o requisite_a than_o these_o to_o be_v remember_v at_o all_o public_a assembly_n it_o have_v be_v show_v that_o those_o prayer_n for_o all_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o person_n in_o the_o church_n which_o since_o have_v be_v call_v litany_n be_v from_o the_o beginning_n frequent_v at_o the_o solemn_a service_n of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o it_o be_v like_o so_o to_o have_v be_v even_o under_o the_o apostle_n now_o though_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o for_o the_o present_a capable_a of_o so_o good_a and_o so_o excellent_a a_o custom_n as_o the_o continual_a celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n on_o lords-daye_n yet_o be_v there_o great_a reason_n that_o the_o litany_n shall_v be_v prescribe_v on_o these_o day_n nevertheless_o as_o the_o next_o member_n of_o the_o public_a
the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o there_o be_v the_o scripture_n witness_v that_o those_o which_o be_v disperse_v upon_o the_o persecution_n raise_v about_o stephen_n do_v the_o one_o without_o difference_n act_v viij_o 4._o xi_o 19_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o all_o christian_n must_v do_v so_o far_o as_o they_o hold_v themselves_o able_a to_o advance_v the_o faith_n as_o for_o expound_v the_o scripture_n in_o church_n settle_v where_o order_n take_v place_n in_o that_o also_o s._n ambrose_n his_o word_n may_v be_v verify_v that_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o all_o that_o be_v to_o all_o condition_n whether_o minister_n of_o church_n or_o not_o but_o no_o otherwise_o grant_v then_o have_v be_v say_v upon_o knowledge_n of_o competent_a ability_n according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o public_a order_n derive_v as_o it_o seem_v into_o the_o church_n from_o the_o synagogue_n but_o do_v this_o fault_n the_o public_a order_n of_o this_o time_n that_o confine_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o this_o office_n to_o the_o public_a ministery_n of_o the_o church_n the_o course_n of_o education_n be_v open_a to_o all_o and_o the_o performance_n of_o that_o course_n prove_v and_o presume_v according_a to_o public_a order_n of_o all_o that_o pretend_v to_o these_o ministery_n the_o ministery_n of_o congregation_n be_v furnish_v by_o that_o public_a order_n to_o authorise_v other_o in_o congregation_n so_o appoint_v will_v be_v to_o choke_v the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n by_o set_v up_o perpetual_a emulation_n and_o difference_n but_o how_o eminent_a soever_o man_n ability_n be_v how_o well_o soever_o know_v to_o themselves_o or_o the_o world_n to_o undertake_v the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n without_o public_a order_n in_o public_a assembly_n be_v a_o thing_n that_o no_o scripture_n no_o time_n no_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v allow_v to_o tread_v all_o that_o learning_n under_o foot_n without_o which_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v upon_o humane_a endeavour_n to_o undervalue_v the_o ability_n of_o a_o learned_a age_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o boldness_n of_o mechanic_n person_n in_o spend_v the_o mouth_n without_o sense_n underneath_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o wantonness_n of_o this_o time_n for_o after-age_n to_o admire_v but_o for_o private_a person_n against_o public_a order_n and_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n to_o call_v such_o assembly_n and_o to_o exercise_v these_o pretend_a ability_n in_o such_o assembly_n as_o public_a order_n forbid_v be_v neither_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o schism_n let_v they_o that_o do_v it_o advise_v at_o who_o door_n the_o sin_n of_o that_o schism_n lie_v for_o the_o public_a profession_n of_o this_o church_n be_v the_o same_o that_o have_v be_v prove_v these_o so_o many_o year_n to_o contain_v no_o cause_n of_o separation_n in_o it_o and_o these_o that_o separate_v be_v so_o far_o from_o set_v a_o foot_n new_a or_o from_o prove_v old_a charge_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v yet_o to_o learn_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o say_v or_o not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o thing_n command_v by_o god_n the_o division_n that_o and_o shall_v arise_v in_o the_o church_n be_v a_o thing_n foretell_v by_o god_n he_o that_o have_v foretell_v that_o division_n shall_v come_v have_v command_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o come_v to_o i_o it_o seem_v a_o strange_a reason_n because_o god_n have_v foretell_v that_o heresy_n shall_v come_v in_o for_o man_n therefore_o to_o set_v open_a the_o door_n and_o for_o public_a order_n to_o take_v a_o course_n by_o the_o independence_n of_o church_n to_o allow_v as_o many_o religion_n as_o conventicle_n the_o dependence_n of_o particular_a congregation_n upon_o episcopal_a church_n for_o the_o original_a relate_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o the_o end_n to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o dependence_n of_o these_o bishop_n church_n upon_o the_o seat_n of_o metropolitanes_n and_o patriarch_n acknowledge_v a_o mere_a humane_a original_a from_o the_o state_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o chief_a power_n of_o it_o but_o not_o without_o respect_n to_o the_o gospel_n first_o plant_v according_a to_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o most_o eminent_a city_n and_o thence_o derive_v into_o the_o country_n about_o but_o relate_v to_o the_o same_o end_n of_o one_o church_n as_o procure_v the_o actual_a correspondence_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o since_o religion_n be_v become_v part_n of_o the_o state_n of_o several_a kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n they_o be_v not_o to_o receive_v from_o one_o another_o the_o law_n that_o enforce_v the_o exercise_n of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v requisite_a that_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o through_o each_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n be_v uniform_a by_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n advise_v by_o each_o church_n and_o enforce_v by_o each_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n the_o dependence_n of_o particular_a congregation_n upon_o episcopal_a church_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n according_a to_o such_o rule_n continue_v inviolable_a as_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n now_o regard_v we_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n regard_v we_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n regard_v we_o the_o honour_n and_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o credit_n of_o our_o profession_n towards_o such_o as_o be_v without_o this_o dependence_n of_o church_n be_v not_o more_o effectual_a in_o any_o point_n of_o religion_n then_o in_o the_o uniform_a and_o prescript_n form_n of_o god_n public_a service_n what_o mean_n be_v there_o so_o effectual_a to_o convey_v and_o settle_v the_o truth_n profess_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o people_n then_o to_o glorify_v god_n in_o it_o and_o according_a to_o it_o in_o the_o continual_a exercise_n of_o his_o service_n what_o mean_v so_o powerful_a to_o obtain_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n from_o god_n to_o preserve_v it_o with_o man_n as_o to_o join_v in_o the_o same_o uniform_a service_n of_o god_n for_o the_o purpose_n as_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o the_o commendation_n of_o that_o profession_n which_o we_o make_v let_v common_a reason_n not_o possess_v with_o prejudice_n be_v judge_n whether_o the_o voluntary_a extemporary_a conception_n of_o particular_a minister_n of_o congregation_n or_o the_o form_n mature_o advise_v by_o the_o most_o able_a shall_v prove_v the_o more_o probable_a mean_n to_o procure_v it_o let_v the_o public_a exercise_n of_o religion_n consist_v in_o speak_v to_o the_o people_n more_o than_o man_n have_v learn_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o permit_v man_n to_o vent_v their_o own_o passion_n or_o perhaps_o faction_n for_o the_o devotion_n of_o their_o people_n for_o their_o prayer_n and_o thanksgiving_n to_o god_n let_v the_o preacher_n office_n consist_v in_o speak_v by_o measure_n of_o time_n not_o by_o weight_n of_o matter_n let_v it_o consist_v rather_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o lung_n then_o of_o any_o knowledge_n in_o the_o scripture_n let_v the_o hearer_n office_n consist_v in_o patience_n of_o sit_v still_o so_o many_o glass_n or_o rather_o in_o censure_v the_o preacher_n ability_n in_o pray_v as_o well_o as_o in_o preach_v for_o to_o that_o the_o office_n of_o pray_v in_o the_o church_n may_v come_v and_o those_o that_o be_v affect_v to_o the_o profession_n with_o the_o best_a shall_v be_v force_v for_o love_n of_o truth_n to_o lament_v that_o it_o be_v so_o much_o scandalize_v &_o hinder_v by_o they_o that_o pretend_v to_o advance_v it_o but_o let_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n the_o hear_n of_o his_o scripture_n read_v and_o expound_v the_o common_a prayer_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v perform_v with_o that_o discretion_n for_o the_o order_n with_o that_o choice_n for_o the_o substance_n with_o that_o reverence_n for_o the_o outward_a visage_n and_o fashion_n of_o what_o be_v say_v and_o do_v respective_o at_o each_o of_o these_o part_n of_o god_n public_a service_n and_o let_v not_o i_o doubt_v that_o god_n the_o author_n and_o man_n stranger_n to_o our_o profession_n shall_v join_v in_o make_v good_a and_o acknowledge_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n xiiii_o 25_o that_o god_n be_v among_o we_o of_o a_o truth_n finis_fw-la ¶_o the_o author_n upon_o his_o revisall_n desire_v the_o reader_n in_o these_o several_a place_n to_o add_v and_o read_v as_o follow_v pag._n 15._o line_n 12._o after_o his_o own_o add_v and_o indeed_o the_o passage_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v crowd_v in_o hither_o out_o of_o justine_n martyr_n his_o dialogue_n with_o trypho_n the_o jew_n though_o contrary_a to_o his_o meaning_n for_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o jew_n of_o that_o time_n give_v not_o leave_v to_o drink_v warm_v